Home About Us Photos Videos Stories Reviews Forums & Chat Personals Links Advertise Donate Contact
After you've finished reading, you might want to return to the DailyDiapers Story Index
An Old
Problem
by Les Lea
The noise of
the rain beating against my bedroom window woke me up.
It was coming down in torrents and, as I looked at the
blue display on the clock, which read 2.13 I thought, as
I normally sleep with the window slightly open, it might
be wise to close it.
My room looks
out over the back garden and off into the countryside.
Well, it isn’t all countryside; there is a local road
that runs along the back and then a sort of T-junction
that goes off in another direction. However, it’s very
dark and only the occasional beam from our rear motion
sensor security light illuminates a few nearby trees.
However, the bulb had recently blown so everywhere was
completely black and though I knew there were some
nearby trees beyond our fence, I couldn’t make them out.
I closed the
window but was mesmerised by wave after wave of rain
that beat heavily against the glass. I stood there for a
few minutes completely hypnotised by the rhythm of the
falling rain. Then the song entered into my head and I
couldn’t move as I watched deep into the pitch black;
the reflective blue of my bedside clock occasionally
being caught in the raindrops as they streamed down the
pane. It was quite compulsive.
In the distance
I could see sporadic flashes and wondered if the storm
was coming or going. The weather forecast had promised a
period of sudden summer storms but they’d be quite
erratic and some places would escape completely. I could
hear a distant rumbling but it was mostly masked by the
sound of rain incessantly beating against the window.
However, it was a severe summer storm and standing
there, wearing just the shiny green Adidas shorts I’d
adopted as my favourite form of sleepwear, I started
counting the seconds between the flashes and distant
rumblings of thunder the way I had as a child.
I don’t know why
I simply hadn’t returned to bed but, five minutes later
I was still looking, head pressed against the
rain-streaked glass and noticed the lightning and
thunder getting closer together.
Over the years
thunder and lightning had proved a daunting problem for
me but, as I was tracking this one I thought I wouldn’t
be scared as easily as I had been when in the middle of
all that noisy rumbling.
However, a
sudden bright flash lit up the garden and nearby wooded
area as I witnessed a strike about couple of hundred
yards away where a tree burst into flame. I
instinctively flinched and ducked down below the window
ledge as the instant roar around the house rumbled on
for ages.
Although stunned
I returned to the window to see the fractured tree still
ablaze but the rain trying to dampen the flames. Moments
later and something else caught my attention there was
liquid pooling at my feet. I’d let lose a stream of
uncontrollable piss. My shorts clung to my thighs and
hips as the flow of urine continued; the nylon fabric
being no use at all in absorbing much of it.
Not only was I
pissing myself but I was actually shaking where I stood.
It may seem strange that an eighteen year-old should be
scared of a storm. However, this incident brought back
unwanted memories of other times.
#
I glanced at the
clock which now read 3.12. Astonishingly, I’d been
standing at the window transfixed for an hour,
thankfully only paddling in my own piss for a minute or
so since that terrifying strike. The pool on the
hardwood floor was clearly visible whilst my shorts
adhered to my skin and felt very uncomfortable. A couple
more flashes and distant rumbles told me the storm was
in retreat but thought it better to clean up the mess
before returning to bed.
Not wishing to
cause any further commotion I tiptoed to the bathroom,
picking up a couple of cloths to clean up the puddle. I
turned on the main bedroom light to make sure I got the
lot and was surprised at the amount but relieved it
hadn’t flowed to the edge of the rug. I mopped it up and
caught a glimpse of myself on my hands and knees in the
mirror. Even though my shorts still had the sheen of
Adidas’s shiny nylon, they glowed even further with the
addition of liquid. They may have been my favourites but
felt awfully clammy to wear.
The hand-cloths
gradually soaked up my shame and within a few short
minutes I was back in the bathroom and rinsing out my
stained shorts. As I said those old shiny nylon Adidas
were my favourite. I’d had them ages and loved the fact
not only did they still fit but felt wonderful to sleep
in, although not at that moment.
I have a quite a
few pairs of shorts because I prefer to wear them when
I’m home. Ever since school days and made the move to
long trousers, I’ve always changed the moment I got home
and do the same now when I get back from work. I’m
always at my happiest wearing shorts. I’d like to think
it was because I was athletic... but it’s not really.
Anyway, I
cleaned myself up and returned to the bedroom, fished
out a pair of white cotton PE shorts for the rest of the
night and settled back under the sheets. Despite the
rain it was still a relatively warm summer’s night so
had no need for extra cover. I was however, surprised to
notice I was still shaking; my stomach was knotted and
in general felt more than a little nervy.
Though the
hypnotic rain beating against the window wasn’t letting
up I turned on my side to try and exclude the storm from
my brain.
#
I closed my eyes
and immediately my mind went back to when I was three
years old and mum and dad had taken me to France on my
first camping trip. This was before my sister Jenny was
born so there was only the three of us but, on the last
night, a terrific storm had torn down the valley where
we were staying. The thunder crashes seemed even worse
as they echoed and rumbled for ages against the mountain
sides. I was terrified and even being clutched close to
mum and her soothing words didn’t help relieve the fear.
I wet and messed myself as a result.
Being three I’d
just stopped wearing nappies during the day and my
parents were experimenting with me just wearing pyjamas
at night. That immediately stopped after this night,
and, as it turned out, just as well because from then
until I started in kindergarten, I often woke up soaked.
I’m not sure if they made a link that it was because I
was traumatised by the noise or not. However, from then
on I seemed to be able to saturate my night time
protection with or without the help of a raging
thunderstorm.
Much to mum and
dad’s relief I eventually grew out of it but when I was
seven, we went camping once more up into the Yorkshire
Dales. The weather had been surprisingly warm, calm and
a little muggy all day and that night, in our new two
bedroom tent (we were separated by the open kitchen
area) me and my three year-old sister had a room to
ourselves I was woken up by another fierce roar of
thunder crashing around us.
It didn’t seem
to worry Jenny who slept through it but I was seven, a
boy and couldn’t let mum and dad in the partition across
the way know I was still scared of a bit of thunder.
However, the noise got more intense and lasted for about
fifteen loud and, to me at least, terrifying minutes.
Only at the end of which I realised I was crying; I’d
messed both my pyjamas and sleeping bag completely. I
lay in my shitty stew sobbing and half dozing until
morning.
I couldn’t
pretend I hadn’t done what I’d done but of course we all
thought it was a one off. Alas, for the rest of the
holiday, every morning I woke to a soaked sleeping bag
and, even when we returned home, I woke up to a sodden
bed. Mum solution was that I joined my sister and
immediately put me back into nappies. This was just as
well because for the next few months I needed them at
least a couple of times a week.
How I could have
been so traumatised by it all I wasn’t sure but did
notice that back then, even a noisy truck rumbling down
the road produced the odd spurt, which I did my best to
disguise. Mum never said anything but I suspect that, as
she washed my underpants, was well aware of the yellow
stains they rarely escaped.
Now at eighteen,
I would have hoped to have outgrown my anxiety of
thunder and lightning but that puddle had been a
definite clue I hadn’t. However, what undeniably made me
realise I was still like a scared little boy was the
fact that in the morning I was transported back to my
youth having woken up to sodden shorts and soaked
sheets.
It had been a
while since this last happened - wet shorts and even
wetter sheets were not a good way to start the day.
However, whilst in the middle of stripping the bed mum
came in to get me up for work.
“Oh, I wondered
if the storm kept you awake.”
In resignation I
sighed. “It did more than wake me up.”
“Your old
problem?”
I nodded and
shrugged which was a bit non-committal.
“I see...
look... leave all that to me, you go and get yourself
ready for work and tonight... we might have to see about
precautions.”
#
Not every
thunder storm produced that result because over the
years there had been plenty and I’d not been too
affected, well not as much for folk to notice...a little
spurt maybe. It helped if it was distant and during
daylight, or I was in a crowd, or at least immersed in
something keeping me occupied. Unfortunately, being in
my room alone left me more susceptible than I realised.
Unenthusiastically I nodded in agreement with mum’s
assessment but noticed in the shower I was still shaking
and that perturbed me a great deal. Maybe, seeing that
tree burst into flame was something both incredible but
scary. In retrospect I think that affected me more than
I realised.
Although it’d
been quite some time since my last wet disaster I knew
precisely what those ‘precautions’ mum suggested would
be. I know that at my age I should have cringed at the
thought but in truth I agree it’s a sensible way to
go... well at least until I’m over the shock. Especially
as the weather forecast indicated that the
meteorological oddity hanging over our particular part
of the country might produce more storms.
I wasn’t happy
about this. In fact it sent a chill whenever I thought
about it but, hopefully, now I was an adult this would
pass a lot quicker than it had done when I was younger.
In fact, because I was now an adult I didn’t even think
about any further protection as I got dressed... I
simply assumed my puddle moment was all about last night
and not about the day.
Getting dressed
I looked out of the window at the splintered tree and
even though the sun was up and no clouds dulled the
blueness, I was feeling a little shattered though
determined not to dwell on such an eventful night.
#
I was naïve.
Even though I tried I was a fool to think I could ignore
what’d happened.
I couldn’t get
much work done as I worried about how the night’s
weather had affected me and the trembling seemed to get
worse as the day progressed. Lack of sleep made my body
clock out of sync and I was feeling quite agitated,
which was silly really as, at that point in the day,
there was no thunder around.
My job, which
I’d had since leaving school at sixteen, isn’t hard
because I’m sat at a desk behind a computer most of the
day. It’s a very friendly office and there’s plenty of
standing around chatting. As long as we get the job
done, and on time, the office manager Mrs Dewhurst is
pretty easy going. Alas, just after 14.30 I was still so
jittery I pissed my pants.
Quite
unexpectedly, and without the aid of thunder or even a
passing truck, I felt a warmness where there shouldn’t
have been any and saw the front of my beige chinos begin
to turn dark. I could feel my briefs clinging to my
crotch and decided I couldn’t sit around in wet pants
for the rest of the day. I leapt from my chair, grabbed
a folder and headed to the unisex washroom, which was
thankfully empty. I turned on a tap and splashed water
trying to disguise what had happened.
I took off my
chinos and held them under the powerful hand drier.
However, my shirt, which was hardly long enough to hide
my wet briefs, was useless at hiding my embarrassment.
If anyone came in I would timidly explain that I’d
splashed whilst washing my hands.
My chinos were
taking too long to dry and I wished I’d thought about
this a bit longer because I stood there in my soaked
tighty-whities feeling stupid. A couple of people came
in and I explained I’d turned the tap on too high and it
splashed up and soaked my pants. There were plenty of
smiles and I think my excuse was bought. Thankfully they
didn’t inspect my underwear.
As I’m the
youngest in the office, and perhaps just a tad smaller
than average in height, I’m sure they thought it typical
of a daft kid who hadn’t worked out the complexities of
turning on a tap and the force of water. I obviously had
a lot of the basics still to learn.
There are twenty
of us working in the open plan area, only the supervisor
has her own office. Since I started they have called me
the office baby, which I suppose age and size-wise I am.
Don’t get me wrong, they aren’t vindictive
or nasty or anything and I really don’t mind. It’s not
like it’s something they’re always teasing me about. On
the contrary it’s a friendly place to work and I get on
well with everyone. The older ladies especially want to
mother me.
Anyway, twenty
minutes later and my chinos were dry enough to wear. I
slipped into a cubicle, pulled off the soaked briefs and
slipped back into my dry trousers; all very efficient
except I had no idea what to do with my sopping briefs.
In the end I simply tossed them in the bin going
commando and feeling a little strange and oddly guilty.
#
When I got back
to my desk I found a message flashing on the screen with
an attachment. It was a file we’d been waiting on and
needed urgent attention. I’d have to work late to get it
done.
As I say, the
firm is pretty easy-going but when something urgent
comes in it’s expected that you buckle down and
accommodate what needs to be done. If you’ve made plans,
you put them on hold; it’s the trade-off for having the
comfortable work environment we have. Get it done and
your time’s flexible.
I let mum know
I’d be working late, but of course I didn’t mention the
wet pants scenario. She said she’d clean things up so
wouldn’t have to worry about anything. I thanked her,
told her not to make me a meal as I didn’t know just how
long I’d be, and got back to work.
For the rest of
the day we worked hard trying to get the project
complete for the deadline. We were doing quite well but
an important piece of information was missing and
another part of the company, in a different area of the
country, was busy finding it and then had to email it
over.
The missing
folder arrived late but only a handful of the staff was
needed to work on it... I was one of them. Just before I
started on my bit of the project, the clouds re-gathered
and the world seemed to darken. Rain poured from the
heavens and a distant rumble announced another summer
storm was on its way.
As I pulled up
the first page on my computer I felt that strange,
though not unknown, apprehensive tingle run down my
spine. I closed my eyes and told myself to breathe deep,
exhale after a count of five and repeat. I was with a
few others, in a working environment, so should be OK...
or at least I hoped so.
I re-read the
page and was happy to see that my part in the urgent
assignment wasn’t that difficult. In fact, I chided
myself for being so self-possessed about a coming storm
and to just get on with it. I knew if I gave it my full,
uninterrupted attention, I could have this done before
9pm... not as late as some nights I’d worked in the
past. This eased my thinking, just as a brilliant flash
and instant crash of thunder took out our computer
system.
#
The associated
rumble was loud and, in the dark for me at least, quite
scary. The others left in the office to deal with this
urgent assignment were laughing, though I’m not sure if
it was because they found the situation funny or were
hiding their own anxiety. However, the emergency
generator kicked in but only supplied enough energy for
lighting and the most basic of functions. There wasn’t
enough power to run the computer systems and the
associated bank of servers. Things were working but
barely on essentials.
I was standing
in the office wondering what to do next when Paula, the
head of department, noticed my wet pants. Almost at the
same moment I felt a strange tingle as a trickle of pee
streamed down the leg of my chinos. I looked down and
was surprised to see just how wet I was then my gaze
travelled back to the supervisor who had a concerned
look on her face.
“Thunder not
your thing?” she enquired.
I was struck
dumb with dismay as I searched her face for censure but
none was forthcoming. Instead she seemed to read my
predicament and ordered me to follow. I kept mumbling my
apologies as I shuffled, rather than walked, the twenty
or so yards to her office.
It said - Paula
Dewhurst – Head of Tech and Projects – on her door.
She didn’t seem
to react to anything I said but once behind closed doors
sat on the edge of her desk and for the first time in
ages, I realised I was talking to my boss.
Mrs Dewhurst was
one of the most relaxed and even-tempered people I’d
ever met and since joining the team straight from
school, I’d always got on well with her. Although I was
young and a trainee when I started, she took me under
her wing and quickly earned a position as a specialist
in the organisation and research of historical computer
files.
She herself was
very tech savvy and while a good twenty years older than
me (in fact about the same age as my mum), we had worked
amicably together on various projects. Up until then,
the office had been very relaxed and an incredibly
wonderful place to work but, as she sat on her desk
appraising me, for the first time since I’d been
employed there, I felt what I was... a stupid kid who’d
just wet his pants.
She didn’t
insist on a regimented office – it was all first names
and friendly. However, at that moment Paula was most
definitely Mrs Dewhurst... my supervisor.
It could have
been my mum sitting there and deciding what to do but it
wasn’t... it was my boss. I felt the flame of
embarrassment flow from my toes to my face. I tried to
apologise but wasn’t sure if that was enough. I just
mumbled.
#
I didn’t know
what to say or do so I just stood there with my hands
covering the damp patch, and I wasn’t doing a
particularly good job at that. Eventually she seemed to
relax as if she’d come to some conclusion.
“I have a
daughter who reacts to thunderstorms... human
biometeorology or some such thing... and although
she’s now just become a teenager, she still takes fright
when one is forecast. She has a similar response but has
learned to take precautions.”
I stood there
ashamed and not knowing quite what was expected of me.
“You’ve appeared
a little off all day... and now...” She pointed
to the dark stain down my right leg.
I could say
nothing to explain, I didn’t know how to start.
She delved into
her bottom draw and pulled out a small package.
“I can’t have
you working out there in that state... and as I don’t
think we’re going to get the systems back up and running
before tomorrow, I suggest you put this on.” She pushed
the folded package over to me. “Clean yourself up as
best you can and get off home.”
At first it
didn’t register what she’d given me but then it
dawned... it was a Tena Pants Maxi.
“That should
keep any dribbles or other frights at bay until you get
home and... I know you may not be all that keen...” She
must have recognised the shock as I looked at what I’d
been given. “However, if you were my son I’d just tell
you to man up and put it on. You really don’t
want any more embarrassing accidents.”
I didn’t know
what to say because I was quite flustered but, with her
saying... ‘if I was her son’ I knew this was more
an instruction than a request. I’m eighteen but it felt
like mum was telling me something for my own good so I
didn’t feel I could argue the point.
I felt like a
naughty, silly little toddler but did as told and
shuffled out of her office very conscious of how nasty
and cloying wet pants were. Because I’d gone commando
there’d been no underpants to help limit the flood...
and boy had I flooded. I entered the restroom, pulled
down my soaked pants and wiped the damp area with toilet
paper before shuffling the strange but nicely padded
feminine item up my legs. Man up indeed.
I stood for a
second or two... taking in the moment... ‘biometeorology’
was that what she’d said?
Oddly enough,
the soft quilted and supportive padding made me
instantly feel better. I ran my hands over the flexible
fabric and it reminded me of the pull-ups I occasionally
wore when younger. Even though I was at work, and would
have dreaded anyone finding out about my need for
protection when a thunderstorm came, it was wonderful
that my boss understood my predicament. Despite being
designed for a lady, they seemed to grip me in all the
right places and some of my confidence returned.
Again I smoothed
my palms over the soft material and the distant thunder
now didn’t seem so threatening.
I pulled up my
chinos and whilst they were stained I thought, with a
bit of manipulation of the rest of my clothes, I’d
manage to get out of the building before anyone else
noticed. The thunder had rumbled off but it was still
bucketing down. As no doubt I was going to get soaked
again on the way to the bus, drying my pants first would
have been a senseless undertaking. I nervously slipped
on my jacket and collected my things. Meanwhile, Paula,
although I could only see her now as the authoritative
Mrs Dewhurst, was waiting at the door. I nodded my
thanks and said my goodbyes.
“Hope you have a
comfortable journey home.” She smiled before telling the
rest of the office to return bright and early tomorrow
morning. “Be in for 7.30 please, we need to get this all
done and dusted by noon.”
The look she
gave me when I smiled my thanks was returned but I felt
there was more to it and just hoped she could keep a
secret. However, that Tena Maxi Pant hugged me all the
way home and if I’m honest, not only felt fantastic but
did the job it was supposed to do. I had a smile on my
face for most of the journey just thinking about what I
was wearing under my trousers.
However, because
of temporary flooding the bus got stuck in traffic,
which meant the soak-ability of the Tena was put to the
test. Nervously, with other passengers all around, I
released my bladder, so, as the rain beat against the
bus window, my absorbent girlie pants did a fine job.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 2
I arrived
home not much later than usual.
“Hello love, I
thought you said you’d be late.”
“Yer, sorry mum,
I should have called but there was a power cut in the
office and work was suspended... so we got sent home but
have an early start tomorrow... 7.30.”
“Oh, that is an
early start... I’ll make sure you’re up at six that
should give you plenty of time to get yourself sorted.”
It didn’t sink
in at that moment just what mum meant but said she’d
rustle something up to eat if I wanted to get changed.
I’m sure she didn’t know I was nursing a wet Tena but I
was soaked to the skin from the constant downpour so
possibly looked like a drowned rat.
“Thanks mum...
you’re the best.”
#
In my room I
stripped off... everything was wet so everything would
have to go straight into the laundry basket. I padded
over to the bathroom where it’s kept and threw my damp
stuff in. However, I was down to my soaked Tena
wondering how to dispose of that when mum, carrying a
pile of washing and other bits and pieces, came in and
clocked me.
“Well, you
weren’t wearing those this morning were you?”
I blushed and
tried to hide myself behind my hands, which was silly as
mum had seen me naked before, but it was the Tena I was
trying to hide. I was suddenly mumbling but without
saying anything.
“Look, here’s
your clean stuff.” She looked over to the loaded basket.
“I think I’d better put your other things on to wash.”
“Erm mum, can
you soak my chinos please... I had a bit of an accident
at work and, umm, wet them.”
“More storms
uh?”
I nodded.
She mumbled
something about the return of my old problem as she
rummaged in the laundry basket.
“Are your
underpants in here? You’d better let me have them as
well.”
A sudden pang of
guilt ran through my body and a spurt rushed into the
already well-soaked Tena.
“Mmmm, no I left
them at work... I was too embarrassed and...”
“Don’t say
anything else Anthony but you shouldn’t leave stuff for
others to clean up after you.... you know better than
that.”
It was strange
that even though I was working and eighteen, without
meaning to, she could make me feel like a silly,
inconsiderate little kid. Here was mother complaining of
leaving stuff for others to clean up and yet she was
still cleaning up after me.
“Sorry mum.”
She put her
spare arm around me and pulled me in close and kissed
the top of my head. I’m a sucker for a hug.
“Well, where did
the Tena come from?”
I looked at her
questioningly. “How did you know it was a Tena?”
“Believe me son,
women know and put their faith in products like Tena.
Once you’ve had kids they’re an indispensable part of
the mother’s underwear draw.”
This made no
sense to me and I didn’t want to take this discussion
any further so, having taken the pile of ironed clothes
from her, started to leave the bathroom to put them away
when I got back to my bedroom.
Mum followed.
“Aren’t you
going to tell me where you got the Tena from?” She was
smiling but I detected she wanted to know and I knew
better than to keep secrets.
“Er, my Boss,
Mrs Dewhurst... saw I’d soaked my pants... the thunder.”
I bashfully explained. “She offered this as something to
help...”
“Well that was
very nice and thoughtful of her... you’ll have to thank
her... how about a box of chocolates or something?”
“Mummm, I
don’t think it warrants that...” I felt the even
stodgier material so perhaps her thoughtfulness had
actually saved me further embarrassment on the bus.
Mum was flapping
her finger and looking at the expanded Tena indicating I
should give it to her.
“Look, I’ll get
rid of that...” There was a soft ‘ping’ from downstairs
“Ah, your tea’s ready so get some pants on and come
down.”
Mum went and
started wiping stuff down and tidying things up in the
bathroom as I diligently put my freshly ironed clothes
away, the embarrassment of only wearing the sopping Tena
Pants Maxi, now of little concern.
I tentatively
pulled it down and mum reappeared and tossed a towel at
me. I didn’t need any further instruction as I passed
her the mangled wet fabric.
“Oh, there are a
couple of old pull-ups in a cardboard box at the back of
our wardrobe I’ll go and fetch it. I think you should
wear one of those for tonight.”
“What? When did
you get them?” I asked incredulously.
“The last
time... a couple of years ago now but we kept them just
in case.”
I remembered I’d
had a few weeks just before I started my job where on
occasions I wet at night. Amazingly that seemed years
and years ago but it was only two and I’d all but
forgotten about that... though mum obviously hadn’t.
“Do I have to? I
mean I’m...” I was whining like a three year-old.
She returned
with a large box that, judging from the image on the
front, once held an old computer screen.
“Look, dad and
Jenny are watching TV and I think the last thing they’ll
want is for you to have a sudden leak don’t you? You’ll
be wearing one for bed so I don’t see what the problem
is.”
She was being
quite pushy about all this but I wasn’t sure it was that
necessary. However, I should have worn something
for work; though it honestly never occurred to me I
would do what I did whilst in the office.
“Oh no
problem,” I murmured under my breath, “I bet they
don’t fit now... that was ages ago.”
The truth is
I’ve only grown an inch since I was sixteen and my slim
build just doesn’t get fat no matter how much I eat. I’m
still just as slight as I’ve always been, perhaps since
I started work my hair’s a bit tidier but that’s about
it.
#
It was dad who
insisted I got a haircut for work. In just about all
other things mum leads but he was adamant that I
presented a mature and dignified look on my first day.
Since being a kid I’d always had thick floppy hair that
I quite liked but on this occasion dad was firm – Get
Your Haircut.
He said the
style made me still look like a schoolboy, which was all
very well and good, but he wanted my new colleagues (his
words) to take me seriously.
Anyway, I don’t
argue with my parents and both mum and Jenny agreed with
him so, I did what I was told. Now my hair’s much
shorter and dad was pleased at the change. Anyway, there
I was, all grown up... but about to return to my
childhood pull-ups.
Mum was
continuing her conversation.
“...well before
you get all hoity-toity about what you think and don’t
think just check and see... otherwise, you’ll have to
wear a couple of my Tena Lady’s tonight instead.”
I looked
apprehensively at her.
“Well you did
look fetching in one.” She teased.
I wasn’t sure if
she was joking or not but took the cardboard box and
peered in. I was surprised to see it not only held a
large batch of pull-ups but various bottles, creams and
assorted other bits and bats.
I grasped one
folded package and it looked far too small. However,
once I’d flapped it out and slid it up my legs it felt
tight but extremely comfortable hugging my bits and
pieces. Not unlike Mrs Dewhurst’s Tena pants the padding
was subtle and hardly noticeable... I suppose until wet.
I’d worn nappies
and pull-ups on a few occasions over the years yet
approached this as if it was a new experience. I put
that down to the fact that I regarded myself at eighteen
an adult, before I’d only been a kid, and, the last time
I’d needed such night time protection was over two years
ago. I hadn’t had an accident since... well not one that
anyone knew about.
Like always I
slipped on a pair of shorts and tee-shirt, my favourite
way to dress, and met mum in the kitchen but not until
I’d said my hellos to dad and Jenny.
#
We were all sat
around watching ‘Line of Duty’ when the credits rolled.
“Don’t forget
you’ve got an early start tomorrow... and I suspect you
didn’t sleep particularly well last night so how about
an early night for you?”
I could quite
easily have fallen asleep in the chair; the padding of
the pull-up was quite comforting under my shorts.
To be honest I
was quite tired watching TV as my eyes had been
drooping. So mum was probably right... I needed to get a
good night’s sleep.
Both dad and
Jenny had noticed the lightning tree out back and I told
them I’d witnessed the strike. Both seemed impressed and
although I enthused about its spectacular nature I
didn’t go into too much detail about the wet floor... or
the wet work pants as a result. However, talking about
it had sent another one of those strange ripples through
my body so thought it was definitely time for bed.
As is our family
practice I went around and kissed them all goodnight. It
was something we’d always done and even at eighteen
didn’t see why I should stop. It was a nice way of
ending the day.
“I’ll be up in
minute.” Mum murmured as I slipped in to kiss her cheek.
“It’s OK I’m
fine...” I sleepily mumbled back.
“Sweetheart...
you’re wet.” She whispered.
It was only then
I noticed that the front of my shorts had become
semi-opaque and the swelled pull-up, with the colourful
skateboarder motif, could quite easily be seen under it.
I hadn’t known that had happened.
“Ohhh.”
I hurried up to
my room hopeful that dad and Jenny hadn’t noticed though
it wouldn’t be the end of the world if they had... as it
wouldn’t have been the first time.
I took the
stairs two at a time and with each step could feel the
enlarged soaked pull-up rubbing against my crotch. I
stood staring in the mirror at my shorts and for a brief
moment I stumbled back in time to when I was about seven
and had a similar ‘accident’. At that age I was stunned
at how much liquid a pull-up could contain and yet
didn’t feel wet.
I had no idea
why my body was reacting and doing what it did but that
strange tingle should have been a clue.
“Don’t worry
love... it might have been all that talk about the
lightning strike.” Mum was at my door exactly the same
way as when I was younger gently soothing my
awkwardness. “Let’s get these off,” she said tugging at
my shorts, “and you into something a bit more fitting.”
I was a bit
embarrassed but looked over at the box as if it
contained the answer to several problems and noticed
more pull-ups waiting to be used.
I tried to stop
mum faffing.
“Mum I can do it
I’m not a child.” I said it with more assertiveness than
I meant.
“I’m sure you’re
right but, you’re my little boy and at the moment I
think you need a mother’s care and attention so...”
I’m not sure if
all mums are the same but when mine gets something in
her head there’s no stopping her - ignoring any protests
and simply getting on with it.
My shorts and
wet pull-up were down and mum had me naked as she looked
in the box.
“Now, what do we
have in here?”
Whilst doing
that she also passed me the towel from earlier, which
was conveniently still hung over the bottom of my bed. I
automatically began to wipe the area and then wrap it
around my waist as she picked stuff out.
At the bottom of
the box she found a couple of large folded white squares
of fabric.
“Ah, mmm, yes
these might be useful.”
I watched in
fascination but wasn’t keen on having to wear a nappy. I
kept quiet because I didn’t want to give her ideas.
“Probably not,
you’re older now so I can see that... hmmm... these look
like they might not fit so perhaps... hmmm... erm...
tonight... we can double the pull-ups hmmm?”
She looked at me
for a response.
“I’m not sure I
can get two pull-ups over each other they’re a bit
tight.
“Well,” mum
offered, “let’s get you into a dry one first and then
think about it. You get off to the bathroom and clean up
first.”
I did as
directed, giving myself a damn good wipe with the very
cloths I’d used the night before to wipe up the puddle.
I left the wet pull-up and damp shorts on the floor by
the laundry bin for mum to sort out like she always did.
Returning to my room she’d disappeared but returned
shortly with a few things in her hand.
“Right, first
things first, have you got a pull-up on?”
I shook my head.
“Well then do
that now.”
A couple I’d
inspected earlier were laid out on the bed so, without
removing my towel slipped one up my legs. Mum noticed
the extra lotions in the box and had another thought.
“Wait, wait.
Before you do I think we need to give your tender
boy parts,” she smiled knowingly, “a bit more
protection.”
Squeezing a huge
dollop into the palm of her hand she yanked away my
modesty towel and, with the pull-up around my ankles,
immediately started to spread the stuff all around my
privates and bum cheeks.
“Mummm.”
I complained about being treated like a child.
“Stop your
squirming.”
Being eighteen
obviously meant nothing to her as she thoroughly applied
the creamy lotion and then watched as I finished sliding
into a fresh pull-up. God it was like first day of
school all over again but I kept silent.
“OK, yes, they
do look a little tight but, if you put this over it,”
she showed me one of her Tena Lady pads, “and then add
these,” she held up a pair of plastic pants. “You should
see the night through.”
“Mummm.”
I was so shocked I didn’t even ask her where the plastic
pants came from.
“Look, we both
know that this peeing isn’t just going to stop, and even
more so if there’s another storm tonight, so let’s just
be ready and I’ll organise something better in future.
I’ve already checked the waterproof mattress protector
is fitted correctly.... so basically... you’re ready to
go.”
For a moment I
was a bit confused as I didn’t know if she expected me
to wet there and then.
“But mum... I
can’t wear... I mean...”
“Just put them
on and complain tomorrow if you wake up to a wet bed...
otherwise...”
I knew there’d
be no argument and I suppose I was glad she’d come up
with some kind of solution but I felt strangely trapped
in all this stuff and wondered if I’d ever get to sleep.
Despite moments
of slight discomfort the padding did make me feel fairly
safe. After those initial doubts sleep
came fairly quickly and, as far as I know, we had a
storm-less night.
However, come
the morning and the plastic pants had slipped down my
legs and I’d leaked a little bit onto my sheets. So, it
looked like I was back needing extra protection on a
night and I wondered how long it would last this time.
#
Mum was
disappointed that her double pull-up hadn’t worked and
decided that the plastic pants were too thin and loose
to make any real difference. Anyway, she didn’t get in
the least bit impatient because, as she justified: “We
were just trying things out.”
“Sorry mum, but
there’s a bit more washing.”
She just waggled
her head. “"Comme-ci comme ça".
I wasn’t sure
what was meant but then she looked at the clock and said
“If you’d been going into work at the normal time I’d
have come into town with you but no shops will be open
this early... so I’ll go in later.”
I just shrugged
and checked out a darker pair of trousers mum had
pressed and hung up for work, which was a shame with it
being such a sunny day. With these trousers I always
think a shirt and tie are needed instead of just a polo
shirt. That was what I liked about the chinos, casual
but smart, they were summery and made me look a little
less formal around the office.
Had it been
allowed I would have opted for shorts and a polo shirt
and although it was my preferred way to dress, no one
else in the office wore shorts to work.
Anyway, after
the night I’d had it seemed more appropriate to wear
pull-ups instead of my normal briefs ‘just in case’.
Wetting in the office hopefully had been a one off but
didn’t want to repeat that experience so this extra bit
of protection was an added boost to my confidence.
Mum checked by
smoothing the material down. “Hmmm, I hope this will be
sufficient.”
I nodded. I was
getting used to mum treating me like a schoolboy and
checking I’d got all the right things for class...
except I am eighteen so quit it mother. I may
have thought it but I wouldn’t say it. I hate
confrontation even at such a basic level.
She told me to
pack a couple of spares. I debated with myself about
anyone seeing them but thought I doubted anyone would
even notice or be that bothered. Maybe that was wishful
thinking but going on how unconcerned Mrs Dewhurst was I
anticipated the rest of the team would be of a similar
mind.
It was 6.35 and
mum and I sat at breakfast together. Jenny was still in
bed as school was a good two hours away for her and dad
had already left for his job.
“Mum, have you
ever heard of biometeorology?”
She looked
curiously at me.
“I have, it’s
something your father and I looked into a couple of
years back. Why do you ask?”
“Well, it was
something Mrs Dewhurst said about her daughter... that
she suffers when a thunderstorm comes and she has to
take precautions.”
“Really, well
Mrs Dewhurst sounds like a very knowledgeable woman.”
“She’s great and
as I mentioned before very supportive of her staff...”
“She must be if
she gives out her Tena to one and all.” She smiled
cheekily at her joke.
“So,” I grinned
back to let her know I knew she was joking, “what do you
know about it?”
“Well...
biometeorology tells us that the weather can cause
people to suffer from various ailments; migraines,
blocked noses, weepy eyes, sleep problems, asthma... all
kinds of stuff and some can be quite debilitating.”
“But I’m not
incapacitated... I mean I’m eighteen so surely things
like that shouldn’t affect me”
“Yes and no.
Look love, storms have affected you quite often
throughout your life and we all assumed you’d grow out
of it, or at least wouldn’t be so much of a problem. But
last night was different... you witnessed a strike for
the first time. It was all so close and you say you
watched for over an hour. You were drawn to it. It’s not
surprising it had some affect.”
I sat there
thinking about what she’d said. I was also trying to
remember the last time I had a wet night and that was
over two years ago when I was about to start work. I
don’t think there were any storms around then but
perhaps there was and I just didn’t remember.
“So the storms
are still causing my problem?”
“More than
likely, although we haven’t found any similar reaction
on the web. We have tried to find out sweetheart but
have found nothing. I mean, loads of people are stressed
by them, and it can drive people to extremes but perhaps
you’re just wired differently and so... the effects are
different.”
I nodded taking
all this in but the bottom line was that yesterday, not
only had I wet the bed but I’d also peed my pants at
work and that wasn’t on.
Mum reached out
and held my hand as I brought the mug of tea to my lips.
“Look
sweetheart, do you realise you’re trembling now just
talking about it?”
I hadn’t but
suddenly became aware I was flooding my pull-up.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 3
I felt like a
silly little kid wetting myself in front of mum. She saw
I was shaking, did she know I was peeing my pants as
well?
“Mum, I’ve,
I’ve... er... I need to go and change.” I said - guilt
and shame making me blush furiously.
“Oh sweetheart,
have you had an accident?” She asked with such love and
concern.
I nodded.
“OK, let’s get
you changed and see if there’s anything else we can
use.”
We got to my
room and mum immediately went to rummage through the box
again. This time the large white squares of material
were spread on the bed as she checked them out.
“Look love, get
out of that pull-up... clean yourself and come back as
soon as you can and let’s get this sorted quickly
otherwise you’ll end up missing the bus.”
I went to the
bathroom and shrugged down my pants. The pull-up had
done quite a good job of soaking up the piss and I was
quite impressed that it had absorbed so much liquid. I
hadn’t noticed before but the material was still quite
warm so I paused a moment before I pulled them off.
As I ran my
hands over it I began to appreciate what a fantastic
invention they were. I was quite proud of the bulge the
engorged padding had given me and, as I patted it, how
solid that area had become. It was a strange mix of
feelings – gratified I had large manly bulge whilst
being childish for soaking myself... also the pull-up
had a cartoon image of a boy skateboarding on it...
Jeez.
I heard mum
calling and rushing me to get a move on so I stepped out
of it, grabbed a sponge and quickly wiped myself down
and then, with trousers in one hand but otherwise
dressed smartly in a shirt and tie, made my way back to
where mum was still fiddling with various items laid out
on the bed.
“Sorry love but
we’re going to have to improvise a little bit and I’m
not sure you’re going to like it but...”
I could see what
she was hinting at... those large fabric squares were
now folded into a tell-tale shape... I was going to be
wearing a nappy.
“Mummm.”
I was using the tone which even to me sounded quite
juvenile.
“Look love, I’ll
get something better when I can get to town but in the
meantime, and to give you at least a modicum of
security, I think it’s best to use something that has
been tried and tested before and proved effective.”
It’s true.
There had been a few times, and at various ages,
when I’d had need of a nappy so it wasn’t an alien
concept for me to have to wear one now. However, I’M
EIGHTEEN so surely...
“But mum,”
there was that childish moan again, “a nappy? Surely
there’s something...?”
“If there was
then I would have suggested it,” she interrupted with an
edge.
Just then Jenny
appeared at the door yawning and stretching.
“What time is
it... am I late for school?”
“No darling,
sorry, just getting your brother off to work, I’m afraid
he had another bad night... the old problem.”
“Sorry to hear
that.” She yawned again. “OK, I’ll get up in a minute.”
“Go back to
sleep love... if you want you can have another hour...”
“’S ok...
I’m awake now...” and wandered back to her room.
I’d stood there,
naked from the waist down and my sister never batted an
eyelid. She hadn’t queried the box or the fact that we’d
just been talking about me wearing a nappy... the
situation seemed so bizarre.
“Let’s get you
into this and then you can get off to work.”
“Mum I can’t be
seen wearing a nappy to work, I’ll just wear another
pull-up I’m sure I’ll be OK.”
“Well you might
think you’ll be OK but from past experience... you know
you can’t guarantee anything. So, for your own good,
let’s make it something that will save any
embarrassment.”
“Don’t you think
wearing a nappy to work will be embarrassing in itself?”
“Look, I’m not
arguing with you... so wear what you want but I think
you’ll feel better knowing that should you have an
accident at least everything will be contained. It’s up
to you.”
Mum was looking
at me as if to say ‘your move’ but, even though I really
didn’t want to, I think she was probably right and a
nappy would be best.
#
There had been
times over the two years since I got the job that,
although I’m quite settled and competent, I felt that
I’m still a little kid only playing at being grown up.
It’s not something I exhibit, well at least I don't
think so, but sometimes, in my head, there’s a voice
that’s saying what a lucky boy I am. Where that
voice comes from, or who said it, I have no idea but,
and I won’t admit this to anyone but occasionally in the
office I have to rush to the toilet and check I haven’t
wet my underpants. Sometimes I have.
“OK, let’s get
that nappy on.” I said pretending it was my decision.
“Good choice
love... now lie out on this towel and I’ll rub in some
cream and a bit of powder and we’ll be done in seconds.”
As I lay out on
the soft material my thoughts returned to when I last
needed this. I had just finished school and was nervous
about the new job I was starting. For a couple of weeks
before and another few after I commenced, I woke up wet.
I was anxious and embarrassed but my parents were quick
to make sure I adopted a ‘safety first’ way of thinking.
“You need to
wear protection when you go to bed.” They both chorused,
so I had little option. First it had been pull-ups but
once I started work for some reason I needed extra
protection at night. “Back to nappies until you’ve had
several dry nights in a row” was the rule.
At that time mum
introduced me to terry cotton nappies and promised that
once she pulled the ends of material together, pinned it
on tightly and added a nice pair of vinyl pants - I’d be
as ‘Happy as Larry’, less anxious and all my worries
would fade away.
“A nappy is
not your enemy... it’s a very good friend.
Learn to appreciate that it’s you it’s protecting.”
Mum made it
sound so positive when I was sixteen and she was doing
the same now at eighteen.
She was as good
as her word and had me tightly bound in moments. She
also found another pair of plastic pants hidden at the
bottom of the box but struggled to pull them up because
they were too tight to go over the bulk. However, after
I got up and wriggled them around a bit they eventually
had the fabric tightly contained.
“I know they’re
a bit constricting... but they’ll hold everything in
quite well so you’ll just have to put up with them for
now.”
Once I’d pulled
my trousers up the bulge didn’t seem so bad although I
certainly knew I was wearing a hefty piece of underwear.
#
I sat on the bus
into town conscious of the fact that I was, at eighteen,
wearing a nappy to work. I had mixed feelings because,
although I felt silly at being reduced to this, the
padding was strangely comforting. The tight plastic
pants keeping everything tidy also provided a sort of
soft silky hug with each slight movement. There was a
soft rustle but I didn’t think many would notice, and
again, I found it quite reassuring.
Mind you, the
rounded, but nonetheless, impressive mound in the front
of my trousers fascinated me. I couldn’t stop prodding
or squeezing it until I saw an old lady looking across
from the seat opposite and she wasn’t very pleased.
There isn’t much you can say in your defence and
announcing it was only a nappy I’m not sure would have
gone down any better. So, flushed with embarrassment, I
stopped and looked out the window for the remainder of
the ride.
The journey
usually takes about twenty-five minutes but this much
earlier time than I usually go had me outside the office
well before 7.30, I hoped that would stand me in good
stead.
Of course Mrs
Dewhurst was already there and a couple of others. In
fact, when I thought about it, there would only be the
handful of us who were sent home last night, the rest
would arrive at the usually time around nine.
“Morning
Anthony, nice and early, thank you it’s much
appreciated.” She said with a smile.
“Is everything
running OK... nothing blow up I hope?” I added as I
switched on the terminal.
“All
tickety-boo. OK guys and gals... fresh coffee and
doughnuts for those who need a sugar fix over there.”
She pointed to full percolator and large box of Krispy
Kremes.
Everyone made a
beeline straight for the treats.
“Oh Anthony...
hope you got home alright last night?” She said when no
one else was nearby.
I was ill at
ease that she was bringing up the subject but nervously
nodded, hoping against hope that she didn’t notice the
padding in my trousers.
“Good good...”
and toddled off back into her office.
Armed with the
welcome refreshments I waddled back to my desk and
settled in to catch up on the project - my security
confirming padding making its presence felt. However,
ignoring its tightness, by 9.30 we were well into it and
by almost eleven Phil, the ‘Initiative Manager’, was
compiling the finished assignment for Mrs Dewhurst’s
official clearance. Meanwhile, other, normal day-to-day
stuff had to be done but that was so much less intense.
The task passed
approval and Mrs Dewhurst came out and thanked us all
for such sterling work.
#
At just after
12.30 I had a visitor. Mum, armed with loads of bags,
came into the office to check I was OK.
“Mummm.”
It seemed I couldn’t stop myself from that childish
whine.
“It’s OK love
I’m just here to let you know I’ve got everything and to
see if you’re coping alright with...?” She nodded
towards my crotch.
“Mum,” The
entire office was looking in my direction and I saw Mrs
Dewhurst come out to see if there was something she
should know about. No one had met my mother before so
they weren’t sure who she was.
“Everybody this
is my mum... mum this is everybody.” I said breathing
out and wishing I’d had warning she was going to drop
in.
“Hi Mrs Turner,”
some said in acknowledgement.
Once that was
over, everyone returned to work except Mrs Dewhurst, who
came to introduce herself properly.
“Hello, Mrs
Turner I’m Paula Dewhurst... I’m your son’s supervisor.”
“Hello Mrs
Dewhurst...”
“Paula.”
“Paula...
pleased to meet you... Anthony speaks very highly of
you... he loves working here.” She added unnecessarily I
thought.
“We like having
him here as well... he’s a great asset and a fine lad...
a tribute to you and your husband no doubt.”
“Well that’s
very kind... er... I was just checking to make sure he
was OK...” Mum looked around to see if I was
listening... and I was.”
“Actually Mrs
Turner...”
“Mary please.”
“Mary...
could I have a word in my office?”
Mum’s smile
remained as she followed Paula but I could tell she was
a bit worried about what was about to take place. The
door closed and I was left sitting at my desk anxious
about what these two women would be telling each other.
I desperately wanted to sneak up and listen but that
couldn’t happen in our open plan office.
“That doesn’t
augur well.” Deidre who sits next to me had a grimace on
her face.
I just sighed
and shrugged I just wish mum had gone straight home
rather than call in to check on me.
Suddenly my
nappy felt tight and restrictive and it was only then I
realised I’d wet it.
“Bloody hell.”
#
As she took the
offered seat Mary asked anxiously. “Is everything
alright... have I broken a rule about visiting my son?”
“No, no, nothing
like that... it’s just, well a little delicate.”
Paula was half
hoping the Mrs Turner would automatically know what she
was hinting at but then realised what a sensitive
subject it might be for all concerned.
“It’s about
Anthony’s little accident yesterday.” She almost
whispered.
“Thank heaven
for that,” Mary looked relieved and then a little
guilty. “I mean, I thought it was about something
terrible... sorry... I mean I thought he might be fired
for some misdemeanour...”
“Well, look, er,
um...” Paula was trying to find the correct words.
“Yesterday... in the office... he wet his pants twice.”
She searched
Mary’s expression to see if she knew.
“Oh.” She hadn’t
known it had been twice.
“Of course, it
isn’t a cause for dismissal, heavens no, but I was just
wondering if, well, if there was anything we could do
here at the office to help.”
“Well, it’s an
old problem... you see my son gets scared by thunder
storms and witnessed a particularly bad one over the
weekend that produced an old problem of an
uncontrollable bladder.”
She looked to
see if Mrs Dewhurst understood.
“We have no idea
why he should... but he does... and sometimes that
weakened state can last for quite some time. I think
Anthony thought at his age he was over such a reaction.”
Now she’d started speaking it all just flooded out.
“However, the same happened at home and as of today he’s
back to wearing more robust protection.”
The conversation
carried on for a good ten minutes where Mrs Dewhurst
said she was conversant with parts of Mary’s story as
her daughter also had a similar problem.
They discussed
their past and present means of containing the dilemma
and both seemed to agree that a firm insistence on thick
protection was the best first step.
“I get my
daughter into a disposable at the earliest opportunity,”
Paula smiled.
“We used to do
that but, as we never know how long it will last... it
can end up expensive so we put him back into these...”
She opened one
of the huge bags she had with her and took out a couple
of hefty terry cotton squares.
“I’ve had to buy
some new ones today but... ummm... I’m not sure how you
feel about this but... do you think I could leave a
couple here for him to change into?” Unsure she looked
up into Paula’s eyes. “I mean, he’s hopeless at changing
himself but at least he’d have something spare here
should he need it. Sitting at his desk in a wet nappy is
not going to be good for him.”
“No, I don’t
suppose it would.” A little off-guard Paula agreed.
“Perhaps you could leave a couple of disposables
instead... I’m only thinking out loud... trying to keep
the poor lad from too much embarrassment.”
“Well,” Mary
sounded disappointed, “if you think that would be
better... I think her prefers fabric because that’s what
we’ve got him used to but...”
“No, no, no...
I’m sorry... of course, if you think these fabric
nappies are best then...”
“Look I have
extra pins, powder, cream and plastic pants. I could
leave a supply here with you and then...”
“Wouldn’t he be
embarrassed coming to me for his supplies?”
“I think he’d be
more upset if his work colleagues knew about his
problem.”
“Mmmm, yes, I
can see that.”
“He always
speaks highly of you and, I hope I’m not being out of
line here but... he sees you as his surrogate mother
anyway.”
“Oh.” It was
Paula’s turn to be a bit disappointed.
Mary was quickly
in. “I mean he always speaks well of you and says how
fantastic it is to work alongside you. Quite simply he’s
in awe and has the utmost respect for you and your
position. Please don’t take what I say the wrong way but
he idolises you.”
Mrs Dewhurst
thought for a moment. She couldn’t help that the
unsolicited praise had struck a welcome and surprising
motherly chord.
“You say he’s
hopeless at changing his own nappy so...”
“Afraid so. It’s
one of those things he’s just not got a handle on with
any degree of success. I think he excels in other
areas.” She gave a hopeful shrug.
“He’s very
competent when it comes to anything here at work. He and
I have developed a few new systems...”
“Well, to be
honest I think that’s what he needs... the firm
encouragement of a woman who knows what taking charge is
all about. AND, although I know I’m asking a lot, it
would mean a great deal to know he was being looked
after right here at work.”
There were a few
moments silence as the women ruminated on their
conversation. Anthony wasn’t a child and this wasn’t a
kindergarten but was in a vulnerable position if he
couldn’t help wetting himself. No one wanted this
eighteen year old to be embarrassed at work and although
precautions would be taken... perhaps it would put minds
at rest if a resolution was found and agreed to.
Mrs Dewhurst sat
up at her desk for a moment deliberating. “Well, I have
to admit, after yesterday I did feel sorry for the poor
boy... and lending him one of my Tena...”
“Ah yes, thank
you for that and,” Mary delved into her bag and brought
out a colourful box, “Anthony insisted that I get you
these as a thank you for being so considerate. He really
appreciated your thoughtfulness.”
“Roses
chocolates, my favourite.”
“I don’t think
there are many women who can refuse a box of these. I
know I can’t they last a couple of days at most in our
house... and it’s mainly me who eats them.” She chuckled
at her little self-deprecating comment.
Meanwhile,
although the chocolates had been a slight distraction
Paula was still unconvinced by this unconventional
solution.
“Are you sure
he’ll go for me changing him?”
Mary allowed
herself a little smile.
“Just be firm,
as if he was your daughter, because you know what’s
best for him and...” she fondled the nappy material
that was draped over her knee, “he will do as he’s told.
A strong insistence and I’ve never known Anthony either
answer back or not do as he’d told. He absolutely hates
confrontation of any kind.”
“So, unlike
my daughter... at thirteen she’s as argumentative as
anything... it can get a little waring at times.”
“Well I can
assure you that’s not Anthony. He’d be more embarrassed
at causing a scene than having a nappy changed.” She
thought for a moment, “and I would suspect be more than
grateful to be relieved of a wet nappy and have a dry
one instead. However, I know this isn’t something you’d
be expected to consider as part of your working day so
I’ll understand if I’m asking too much.”
Again there were
another few moments of silence but although Mary knew
she was asking a great deal hoped her son’s boss would
agree. If not, then Anthony would have to struggle
through it on his own.
Mary looked at
her watch.
“Sorry Mrs...
erm... Paula, I’m taking up far too much of your time
and I’m sure you have better things to do than worry
about my son.”
“Actually Mary,
it’s been wonderful to speak with you and you’ve given
me a different perspective on Anthony so, why don’t you
leave those things and I’ll do what I can.”
“Well that’s
incredibly thoughtful of you. Anthony always says you
are very, very kind so thank you from both of us. I hope
it’s not going to be too much trouble.”
“We’ll see...
er.... um... we don’t know how long his problem will
last do we?”
“No, that’s
correct, but the storm was quite intense and he saw a
strike on a tree not far from our
house so... this is a new intensity and we’re really
just preparing for the worst but hope for the best.”
Mrs Dewhurst
nodded in agreement.
“I’m sure that
despite the occasional wet nappy, it really won’t
interfere with his work...”
“No it hasn’t so
far so I suppose that’s a good thing.”
Mrs Turner
folded the spare items on Mrs Dewhurst desk, together
with the creams, pins and powder. She than slipped a
packet of plastic pants on top.
“There are three
pairs in that packet... luckily they were in a sale so I
went mad and bought a few packs... they should be large
enough to keep him snug and safe once he’s been
changed.”
“OK, well thank
you for coming in and bringing me up to date on Anthony.
I’m sure we can work some process out that will keep him
safe, secure and dry.” She said as she ran her hand over
the pile of soft fabric on her desk.
“Well thank you
for being so understanding. Anyway, I’d better get off
and thanks again.”
Mrs Dewhurst led
her out and with a wave to her son, and whilst hauling
those huge bags, Mary hurried from the office.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 4
“Oh my god,
oh my god, oh my god... what had mum and Mrs Dewhurst
talked about?”
Mum seemed to
have been in there ages. In fact, it must have been
quite some time because I’ve wet my nappy in nervous
anticipation whilst waiting for her to come out. I
didn’t even get chance to question her before she rushed
off home. No doubt I’m going to be called in soon and
told off for mum’s impromptu visit.
Mrs Dewhurst
looked out to me as she drew the blinds to her office.
She’s done that before if she gets a migraine and no
doubt mum had encouraged one along. I was trying to
concentrate on my work but had a nagging suspicion mum
had fled so she wouldn’t have to explain anything.
What could that
be?
After about half
an hour Mrs Dewhurst beckoned me to her office. Again
pessimistic Deidre voiced her troubled opinion – “That
can’t be good” – before I nervously made my way
there.
She was sitting
behind her desk unwrapping the shiny purple covering of
a Hazel in Caramel from a large box of Roses Chocolates
on her desk.
“Thank you for
these... they weren’t necessary but much appreciated.”
“Oh, that’s why
mum came. I, I, erm, wanted to thank you again for your,
um, kindness...”
“Yes, your
mother said you were considerate that way.” She smiled a
chocolatey smile.
I felt relieved
that’s what mum brought in but now I felt stupid for
getting myself in a state and flooding my nappy.
“You’re a very
lucky lad Anthony having a mother who is so attentive to
your needs.”
“Yes, well we’re
that type of family... all quite close and all...”
“Needless to
say, we did talk about your little accident in the
office yesterday and the possible reasons for that.”
I felt
everything tighten up in response and another spurt of
pee entered my already soaked nappy. I didn’t know what
to say or do and I stood there struck dumb waiting for
her to dismiss or ridicule me or...”
“She tells me
that you are back in protection is that correct?”
I didn’t want to
admit it but this was someone in power so I wasn’t going
to lie. I nervously nodded yes.
“I suspect that
you are wet at the moment... is THAT correct?”
Again, I was in
no position to deny anything and reluctantly nodded.
“OK, well your
mother has convinced me that to get the best out of you
whilst you have this problem, and that you will
work more efficiently, is if you are put into a dry
nappy.”
She looked into
my eyes that were trying desperately to look elsewhere.
“Do you think
she’s correct in that assessment?” She’d never spoken to
me in that sort of inquisitive tone before and I was
caught off-guard.
My entire body
was in flight mode and yet I was stuck, unable to force
my muscles to respond, her deep pile carpet held me like
a spider’s web. It felt like I’d been a naughty little
lad caught in some stupid act.
#
She slipped
another chocolate in her mouth, I couldn’t see which one
but it did give time to think about my next move. There
wasn’t one.
“Hmmm not very
talkative at the moment but your mother and I have
sorted your dilemma. As from today, until you are over
these damp episodes, I have spare nappies and
stuff here for you to change into.”
Now my body
really was reacting to this news and I was shaking
violently within.
“As you are wet
at the moment I don’t see why you shouldn’t change now.”
It didn’t seem a request just something that was going
to happen. “And, if you’ll pardon my presumption,
although your mother has already sanctioned the next
move, I’m going to change you as I would my thirteen
year old daughter when she has a similar problem.”
I could feel a
scream, a shout, a pleading but nothing but numbness
gripped my body. I definitely wanted to say no but...
mum had already authorised this, this, this
betrayal of my privacy.
I was praying
for someone to come in, or the phone to ring, or
something to avoid the embarrassment that mum and Mrs
Dewhurst had organised. I couldn’t believe what she’d
just said or that was an action she’d be prepared to
take.
I found my
voice... it was small and almost imperceptible. “But,
but...” and that was the sum total of my protest.
“Anthony, I know
this might seem a bit unconventional,” her probing voice
had become more friendly and understanding. “But you are
in a very delicate position and your mother is worried
that your nappy will cause further problems if left
unattended.”
I stood
mortified.
“OK Anthony,
just lie out on the carpet and leave the rest to me.
Think of me as your surrogate mother... and I’ll think
I’m changing my daughter... so we should both be less
embarrassed.”
I was standing
stock still and stunned... this can’t be happening.
“Anthony,”
she barked. “I’ll not tell you twice and in future
you’ll do as I say immediately if you don’t mind. I have
other things to deal with apart from your wet nappy. Now
take off your pants and lie out on the carpet.”
When authority
barks an order I do as I’m told so nervously lowered my
pants, exposing the soaked and saggy material being held
up by an equally bulging pair of opaque plastic pants.
“Your mother is
correct a wet nappy shouldn’t be left for too long.”
Good grief how
on earth had they got around to talking about nappies?
The thing was
the fabric had turned a pale yellow and the odour of
urine assaulted the senses. If it wasn’t for the
firmness and immediate action of Mrs Dewhurst I would
have died from embarrassment. I didn’t get the time or
opportunity to protest as she just looked around, I
guess to make sure she had all the correct items to
complete the change.
Now I was
dreading anyone coming in but the office knew if the
blinds were drawn only in emergency was she to be
disturbed. We were all aware of the nasty migraines she
suffered and needed a few minutes of peace and quiet to
fight it off.
I lay there like
a statue unable to speak or move.
This was terrible pressure and I felt myself spurt
another warm jet into my already sodden nappy.
She opened her
desk and took out some wet wipes, tubes of ointment and
container of powder. She hesitated a little bit before
revealing a brand new nappy, which she then immediately
set about folding.
Once that was
ready she released the saturated material around my hips
and exclaimed just how wet it was. I was dying from
total embarrassment as she wiped the damp area around my
equipment.
“Now don’t be
embarrassed Anthony (a bit late for that) just
relax and I’ll have this done in a short while.”
#
Why was this
happening? I’m a working man not a toddler. This
shouldn’t be happening.
It felt like my
body was ablaze with humiliation as she wiped across my
penis and balls. I could see she was about to say
something but changed her mind and just decided to say
how nice, clean and dry I’d be before too long.
I could have
done with one of those chocolates and, as if reading my
mind, she picked one out and handed it to me. “To take
your mind off things...”
I sighed and, as
she pulled the entire damp thing away “Lift up
sweetie... erm... I mean please Anthony” instantly
slipped the fresh nappy under my bum.
I did and she
quickly manoeuvred it into place, rubbed in some lotion
followed by a sprinkling of powder.
“Best not have
too much, don’t want everyone wondering who smells of
talc now do we.”
By then I’d
managed to unwrap the sweet and popped it into my mouth
to slowly let it melt on my tongue. It’s my favourite
way of eating chocolate. It did ease some of my
anxieties.
She pulled the
fabric edges up between my legs and across my lower
abdomen and, after a bit of tugging and realigning,
pinned them tightly together with a couple of huge pins
with blue plastic covers over the ends.
“Is that OK?”
I nodded but it
felt different from when mum does it.
“Good, well
nearly done.” She then reached over and pulled out what
I assumed were a packet of plastic pants. I was correct.
She used her
teeth to rip open the seal and jiggled out three huge
pairs of glass-like covers.
“Well, these
aren’t what I was expecting but it’s what your mother
left so...”
Again my voice,
although inwardly crying out in protest, remained
stoically silent to anyone else. Also I’d reached the
centre of the chocolate and a sweet, sticky orangey
flavour burst on to my tongue. Mmmmmmm that
tastes sooo good.
At the same
moment she shuffled the slippery plastic up my legs, the
dry thick material clearly visible under cover and
squeezed all the excess air out before indicating I
could put my trousers back on.
I stood up and
couldn’t get over how different a dry nappy felt, it
seemed to hang differently as well but under the vinyl
pants all I could identify were the folds and pins.
#
She watched in
fascination as I nervously dragged my pants up. There
was a slight feeling of extra padding but otherwise
she’d done a good job. Although I was horrified by what
had just happened, I was also appreciative of being out
of a soaked nappy. Whenever I was put into a nappy I had
these mixed feelings - annoyed yet appreciative.
She slipped the
used wet items into a plastic bag.
“You need to
come and collect this before you go home tonight... your
mother will be expecting them.”
At that moment I
simply nodded as if I was a schoolboy and been told I
could take home some project made in class to be admired
by the family.
In fact, the
entire procedure had me thinking back to being a kid and
the times I’d been scared by a storm and my wetting
returned. Although most of the earlier occasions were
sketchy I remembered some where we never knew just how
long the problem would last. Damp patches
appeared without warning and then so did saturated
pull-ups or nappies, which meant I was changed in
assorted places as mum or dad made sure I didn’t sit
around in soggy stuff for too long.
“Ermm, thank
you... erm...” I didn’t know whether to call her Paula
or Mrs Dewhurst. Using her Christian name seemed a bit
too familiar and disrespectful considering what had just
taken place.
I left her
office and the eyes of the team where on me. “No raise
I’m afraid... mum just checking on my holiday
entitlements.” It was the best excuse I could come up
with on the spur of the moment.
The rest of the
day passed without incident or comment and I was glad to
get my bus home, armed with my secret shame in a plastic
bin bag. The day had been peculiar and as the journey
continued I began to chuckle to myself. Incredibly, I’d
been changed by the boss. I’d had a chocolate shoved in
my mouth to keep me occupied, reminiscent of the times
mum would slide a dummy in to keep me quiet when I had a
change. Weird or what?
Despite the
strange circumstance I was glad to be in a dry nappy, it
made such a difference to how I worked and reacted to
those around me. To be candid, a soggy wet nappy is not
nice to sit around in so no matter how excruciating the
change was, I was very grateful.
Most of the time
I forgot I was wearing anything but when I did there was
a surge of relief. No one mentioned anything but I was
in a peculiar mental situation - I’d just been changed
by my boss and hadn’t objected; that was just plain
crazy. Also, the fact that the office was on a high
because we’d finished the project on time and management
had been very impressed by our department and the speed
we’d turned things around. The fact I’d been part of
that success filled me with pride. I may have had my
doubts earlier that morning but mum had been correct,
wearing a nappy to the office had not hindered my work
in any way.
It had been
quite an unusual day and I found myself smiling at what
transpired, which would make it difficult to be angry
with mum when I got home.
#
The bus ride was
uneventful and although I noticed the larger bulge I
refrained from playing with it, I didn’t want to raise
the indignation of any other passenger.
The weather had
been pleasant all day and I noticed a lot of summery
clad people out and about. I hated wearing a shirt and
tie, always had, but dad had convinced me that when
working in the environment I did, looking smart gave the
correct impression.
Thankfully, the
office under Mrs Dewhurst jurisdiction only insisted on
smart casual but a suit was quite permissible should
that be your thing. I only wore my suit for the first
week after that it was much more relaxed attire. So,
having spent the day in a shirt and tie and heavier than
normal dark wool trousers I was looking forward to
shedding the lot and slipping into my favoured t-shirt
and shorts.
#
When I got home
there was only Jenny in the kitchen finishing her tea.
“Where is
everyone?”
“Dad’s not home
yet and mum’s visiting Mrs Symanski.” She said before
piling more salad on her fork.
Mrs Symanski is
a pensioner who lives a few doors down from us and who
mum does the shopping for.
“Oh” was my spot
on comment.
“There’s tuna
salad in the fridge and I can put some garlic bread on
if you want to go and change.” She said helpfully.
“Mmmm, that
would be great. I’m sweating like a pig in all this.”
“You do know you
could undo your tie when not at work don’t you?”
This simple
suggestion made me realise just how bright my fourteen
year old sister actually was. It had simply not occurred
to me on my sweaty journey home.
“Boys?” She said
dismissing me and searching for the garlic bread in the
freezer.
It didn’t click
that she hadn’t said “Men?” until I got up to my room
and that was only when I’d taken off my pants. Briefly I
felt annoyed she hadn’t said Men but then I saw in the
mirror my shiny underwear and decided I had no reason to
be annoyed with her at all.
Why mum had
bought these particularly revealing plastic covers I
didn’t know but I just shrugged and decided it couldn’t
matter less. They held the fabric together nicely and
didn’t crinkle too much under my pants.
I put everything
away and then checked that I was still watertight, I
was. I slipped on a pair of loose white nylon P.E.
shorts and a black t-shirt I used to wear for gym at
school and headed back to the kitchen. By then Jenny had
gone but set out on the table was my salad and a large
slice of garlic bread, which was something I really
liked. She’d also poured a glass of juice and cleared
her own stuff away.
#
As I ate I felt
quite comfortable sat in the still dry thickness of the
nappy Mrs Dewhurst had put me in. The bulge in the
shorts was quite pronounced but, as I had no plans on
visiting anyone was happy how I was for the rest of the
evening. The slippery glassy cover could be made out
under the shorts but I was just pleased to be released
from the restrictions of office clothes.
I saw Jenny out
in the back garden under a parasol enjoying the early
evening sunshine. It was still quite lovely so picked up
my plate and drink and headed to the small table outside
to take my meal al fresco.
She’s four years
my junior and now almost as tall as me but the
difference between us is considerable. Jenny has always
had a thing about fashion and looking good, and, even as
a schoolgirl exudes sophistication and confidence.
Laying in the sun now she looked terrific, like she was
posing for the cover of one of her fashion magazines.
Here I was, dressed in my old school P.E. outfit, more
or less the complete opposite of style. She didn’t mind,
in fact, she’d never been one to criticise me or my
‘problems’.
As I shovelled
in a forkful of lettuce and tuna I saw she had her eyes
closed and even the way she was laid out had a touch of
finesse. My younger sister was destined, especially as
she had brains as well, for an unbelievable future... or
so the family anticipated.
It seemed that
from being a twelve year old flat chested schoolgirl to
the now pert-busted young lady had been a natural
development that had passed me by. She looked stunning
and I’d heard there were already a number of seniors
flocking around in the hope of becoming her boyfriend.
#
When she was
three and we were camping and sharing the same tent
compartment, not only did she not wake up during the
storm she never said a thing when we both ended up being
put into nappies. Now I think about it her seven year
old brother was wearing protection for longer than she
was.
Then, throughout
my history of suddenly needing protection, she’d never
once thrown that fact in my face, used it as ammunition
or tried to belittle me because of it. She’d always
seemed to understand. Over the years she’s seen me at
various ages suddenly wearing a nappy but like mum and
dad, just accepted the fact and realised it didn’t need
a comment.
I should also
say that it was her encouragement that got me the job
I’m in now. Two years ago, mum, Jenny and I were on a
shopping excursion in town. It was the school summer
holidays but mum wanted us to look for clothes for the
new term. She’d gone off to pay some bills
or something and to prevent us getting bored the two of
us ended up at Burger King for a milkshake.
I have to admit
that both my parents thought I should pursue more
academic studies but I’d told Jenny in confidence that I
was, despite not being a complete dummy, hating school
more and more each day. She said that I should look for
work to see what was on offer.
“If it involves
computers and,” she said with a grin, “not too
physical, go for it.”
I took her
advice and within four weeks I’d found the trainee job
where I am now and I’d never been happier. Had it been
left to mum and dad, I’d be still in school and
resenting every minute. Although not completely on board
with my decision they saw I was determined and when I
secured the position couldn’t really insist anymore.
However, there
was a drawback, I suddenly started wetting the bed which
I presumed was the anxiety after the interview though
before I started work. That’s when mum bought me
pull-ups to sleep in and hopefully keep the wetting
under some control because during the day I was fine but
at night... no chance. Once I started work my sixteen
year old anxiety levels increased and so did the amount
I seemed to pee so for a couple of weeks my night-ware
had a thick nappy with plastic pants as its base.
Thankfully though... no daytime wetting.
#
I wasn’t sure
why the memories were so strong but all the times I’d
been put back into pull-ups or nappies came flooding
into my mind. When I thought even more on the subject it
was apparent that Jenny had grown up over the years
whilst I had, apart from getting a job, stayed more or
less the same; same physique, same choice of clothes,
same enjoyment of stupid, silly computer games. To say
my development was stunted (I hardly had any body hair)
and the fact my penis hadn’t advanced the same way as
Jenny’s breasts had flourished made me wonder why.
However, just a quick look down at the thick fabric
bulge under my shorts surely explained everything. I was
still locked in some sort of childhood battle with
thunder and lightning... and the elements were winning.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 5
Mum and dad
had both joined us out in the garden, the warm evening
air enticing us away from the TV and promoting family
time.
“Was a salad OK
for everyone?” Mum queried.
“No probs.”
Jenny
“Just fine
love.” Dad
“I had a slice
of garlic bread with mine so... it was great.” I added
to the small talk.
Similar general
chat went on - very relaxing, everyone happy and no
drama. It was like a scene from a pretty boring British
sit-com. Except later...
“Good, good.
Erm... Mrs Symanski is going to stay with her sister on
the coast next week... erm... anyone fancy a trip to the
seaside at the weekend?”
Dad was quick on
the uptake.
“I guess by that
you mean you’ve volunteered us to take her?”
“Well, yes, but
I thought it would be terrific if we all went and made a
weekend of it... for a change... and a break from
work... and a nice neighbourly thing to do.” Mum was
trying to be altruistic but failing.
I think we all
sort of shrugged. A couple of hours in the car with Mrs
Symanski not something anyone would want... that woman
could talk. However, mum suggested that once we dropped
her off at her sisters then our time would be our own
and, we’d stayed there in the past in a caravan and had
a great time. Mind you, we were only kids then.
The upshot was –
dad said he had to work Saturday, Jenny simply said she
didn’t want to go as had things planned and I, well I
couldn’t come up with an excuse I thought anyone would
buy. So it seemed mum, me and Mrs Symanski would be
driving to the coast.
Now that was
settled mum went off to book accommodation for me and
her, whilst Jenny read her magazine, dad snoozed and I
unconsciously wet my nappy.
I sighed
realising what I’d done because the warmth of my crotch
was growing hotter than the heat of the pleasant
evening... I also noticed that my hands and legs were
shaking, which I’m sure wasn’t a good sign but tried to
hide it.
#
I waited until
mum got off the computer and confirmed she’d arranged
our stay at a small hotel that had ‘popped up’ when she
went online to find a place on the coast.
“It sounds
really nice. It has an indoor pool, a bar and a lovely
garden... 200 yards from the beach... so, quite a step
up from a caravan... eh?”
I nodded and
smiled, for a moment she’d taken my mind off what I’d
come to talk to her about.
“It’ll be fun...
providing the weather holds and the long range forecast
said this should stay until the middle of next week.”
“Mmmm good
but... why did you tell Mrs Dewhurst about my...?”
Her smile stayed
but she knew I was irritated so pulled me in to talk
seriously as she’d done ever since I was a kid... and I
still felt like a little kid now.
“Oh sweetheart,
she was the one who brought it up. Don’t forget you’d
accepted one of her Tena AND,” she raised her eyebrows
as if making a point, “she told me that you’d wet your
pants twice in the office.”
Once again mum
had taken the wind out of my sails as I was now on the
defensive. I hadn’t known Mrs Dewhurst had seen my first
wetting but I suppose she’d put one and one together
after the second accident.
Mum was quickly
in. “I came to check you were OK because I’d bought some
new and hopefully, better fitting things for you and I
was going to take you somewhere to change... make it
more comfortable. But, then, Mrs Dewhurst called me into
her office and we got chatting.” She looked me over and
could tell I was fidgeting. “So, between us we came up
with a solution which I hoped would help.”
“But she’s my
boss,” I whined and my leg was shaking but just a
little.
“More
especially Anthony, she’s a mother who knows about the
problem.”
“But, but,” This
seemed to be the total of my argument these days as mum
asked if I was wet now. I nodded.
It was a really
good job mum insisted on me wearing nappies, otherwise I
imagined there’d be a stream of pee following me around.
“C’mon then
let’s get you changed.” She’d cleverly changed the
direction of my annoyance to one where I was the one
that needed attention.
Once again I
thought I was in the middle of some kind of sit-com, it
was just so bizarre.
#
That feeling of
being a dumb kid returned as she led me up to my
bedroom. But I kept thinking – why involve anyone else
in my worries?
“Muuumm,
I’m eighteen, it’s embarrassing...” my grumbling voice
just wouldn’t stop.
She ignored my
protest but added her own. “And you have yet to master
putting on a nappy so...”
“But she’s my
boss...” I mumbled more to myself than mum.
Once in my
bedroom she didn’t waste any further time and yanked
down my shorts.
“Ohh, where did
you get these plastic pants from?”
“She said you’d
brought them.”
“Ohh mmmm,
see-thru but the front of the packet didn’t show them
like that... you’ve got a couple more packets of them as
I bought a few in the sale.” She did a double take and
decided they were acceptable. “Still, they look like
they’ve done their job and, if I’m honest being able to
keep an eye on your wetting might be a good idea.” She
joked... I think.
Mum was being
both encouraging and practical – they weren’t what I was
used to so I’d just have to make do.
“OK,” She pulled
down the plastic pants and gave me a stern look.
“They’ve done a good job because you’re soaked and
nothing’s leaked. How long have you been like this?”
“Not long...
around the time you talked about taking Mrs Symanski to
her sister’s”
She smiled at
the mound of soggy material in front of her.
“Mrs Dewhurst
has a daughter doesn’t she?” I nodded. “That’s why she’s
folded this nappy for a girl... not a boy... did it feel
different?”
A girl not a
boy, how many ways were there to fold a nappy?
Again I nodded.
“Did it feel
OK?”
“Yes, it was a
bit different but felt tight enough... and... she
thought the see-thru plastic pants were sturdy and would
hold it together firmly.”
I was making
small talk about the nappy as mum slowly unpinned it and
let the folds slide away revealing my damp crotch.
“Do you need to
go to the loo?”
I shook my head;
I think the last soaking had got rid of anything that
had been in my bladder.
“What about
number two’s?”
“Muummm.”
It’s difficult
being angry with mum when she takes so much trouble over
making me all clean and dry. I enjoy this special time
with her.
#
Without further
chat she set to work wiping the area and, as all the
other trappings needed were nearby, I was cleaned, oiled
and powdered in quick succession.
As I lay there
naked apart from a t-shirt she dove under the bed and
pulled out a large bag.
“These are what
I bought this morning.”
I recognised the
bags from those she’d been carrying into the office. I
watched as she pulled out the contents. Several thick
cotton squares and a couple of packets not unlike the
one Mrs Dewhurst had to open. So I knew they were more
plastic pants.
“Finest,
robust vinyl for heavy wetters,” she read the info
on the side of the packet. “AND three for the price of
two... what an offer.” She added as if I should be
pleased with her abilities to find a bargain. “Look,
see, the image on the front is just the outline of
plastic pants there’s no description of them being
anything but plain.”
Well, I suppose
that justified it all then. She then moved to her other
purchases.
“Now these nappy
squares are thicker and more absorbent than your others
but so much softer... feel... they’re quite lovely.”
“Mum,” I pointed
out, “you’ve just taken one off that Mrs Dewhurst put on
me this afternoon.”
“Oh yes, well it
was well soaked so I suppose they’re doing what they
say. How many times have you wet today?”
“Erm, just the
once.” I had to consider had I wet and not realised. “I
think..?.” I wasn’t sure and judging by the look on
mum’s face nor was she.
“Well,” mum then
produced another bag with even more stuff in it. “These
are for night time when you wet the most...” she was
thinking, “well, we’ll see but, they have a thicker
absorbent middle gusset so should hold even more...”
“Mum, why have
you gone mad buying all this stuff, I mean I’ll be over
it soon surely?”
“Look love,
we’re not sure how long it will last this time. I’m
hoping you’ll be as right as rain and back in your sweet
tighty-whities soon but... the number of times you’ve
wet since witnessing that lightning strike...”
She left me to
contemplate what she was thinking.
#
The memory of
that tree bursting into flame and that roar as the
thunder rattled our house clouded my mind. I shook
myself free of the image and responded.
“Ah, yes, but I
was watching that storm coming for quite some time
before the lightning hit the tree and I’d been OK...”
“Really?”
Mum asked doubtfully. “Are you sure you were in
control up until then?”
“Yes, erm,” Now
I was hesitant and questioning just what had happened.
“Yes I’m sure I, er, I, ummm...”
Actually, I
wasn’t sure because an hour past and I wasn’t aware of
all that time I’d spent at the window.
“Look darling...
your father and I have been discussing your old problem
and what’s happened since you had that scary experience.
We think it’s affected you more than perhaps you
realise, so... we’re verging on caution.”
I was shocked
she should think this way but began to wonder myself.
There had been an awfully big puddle by the time I’d
grasped what was going on with my bladder. Perhaps the
flash and the tree bursting into flame had merely
brought on a sudden spurt that made me aware. But, why
should mum doubt me?
“Why are
you...?” I asked emotionally.
“Look
sweetheart. We’ve dealt with this for quite some time
and we’d all hoped you’d be over it by now but... it
appears to us... and I think also to you if you’re
honest... that something else is happening. We’re not
quite sure what or why but in some ways your continued
reactions are getting longer.”
I looked at mum
as if she’d told me some terrible truth. What did she
know that I didn’t or what did she think she knew that I
didn’t. Now she had doubts and so did I. The thing was,
I couldn’t be certain when I’d wet next because it was
happening without my knowledge. Perhaps mum and dad were
right to be cautious.
“We all hope for
the best but, and I’m sorry if this sounds heartless, it
isn’t meant to be, we have to prepare for the worst
scenario and protecting you is the main thing... just in
case this lasts.”
“But I feel OK,
normal, I can still work, nothing’s changed...” I could
tell I was gabbling the words just couldn’t come out
quick enough.
“Yes, yes... and
we want the same as you... normality... but you have to
admit that wetting twice at work and here...” She gave
me a look that said I wasn’t admitting to just how many
times my pants had flooded. “It’s a precaution that’s
all but... I think its nappies now full time until we
see some improvement.”
#
I was shocked by
all this and hadn’t taken in that mum had (even as we
chatted) put me in a new, thick, double-gusseted nappy
and pinned it on. She began to rip open one of the
packets of new vinyl pants and three dropped onto the
front of the fresh white material... these were purple.
“Mummm, I
can’t...”
But mum just
shrugged her shoulders as if it was of no consequence
and inched one of the pairs up my legs.
I couldn’t fight
her and I don’t suppose I really wanted to because a
decision had been made and this was it – thicker nappies
and coloured covers. I suddenly had the taste of orange
in my mouth and I didn’t know why.
For some reason
that ‘taste’ relaxed me but at eighteen and back in
nappies at mum’s insistence, felt a bit strange.
Whenever this had happened in the past I always knew the
decisions made were in my best interest and imagined
that must be the case now so arguing would be pointless.
However, the new thick fabric was sending strange
messages to my brain as I wriggled to see how
manoeuvrable I was.
“Look, I know
it’s early but you’re ready for bed now so you can come
down and talk to me and your dad if you’ve any questions
or stay up here and play on your computer... it’s up to
you.”
The ‘improved’
nappy was huge but in truth didn’t feel at all bad as I
moved around trying it out. Because I’ve had to wear
them on and off for some time now, I actually didn’t
mind having such thick fabric wrapped around my bits. It
was snug and felt nice.
“You see,” mum
observed, “nothing to worry about and you seem fine with
it.”
“But look...
purple.” I said as I stroked the slinky material. I
wasn’t letting on but it had a very smooth and sensual
touch to it.
“No one but us
need to know... it’s not like you’re going to be showing
everything off to your workmates now is it? The colour
isn’t important, the fact they’ll keep everything tidy
is what matters.”
I don’t think
even as a kid I’d ever had plastic pants in this shade.
Up until that moment they’d always been opaque whitish.
Quite
unintentionally I found myself smiling as I ran my hands
over the slippery vinyl cover. I suppose it was a nice
change to get some colour ‘down there’ and they did feel
particularly soft yet tough. I resigned myself to
wearing nappies and this added protection for the
foreseeable future. I’m sure somewhere in the world
there are other eighteen year olds wearing something
similar... or so I hoped.
Thankfully the
slight shake in my legs had gone along with the wet
nappy but I suddenly had a craving for chocolate - that
‘taste’ of orange filled my mouth again and I wondered
if mum had bought a box of Roses for home.
Mum stacked the
stuff in the wardrobe and left the room. I just stood
there for a few minutes checking myself out in the
mirror. The padding was large but not so gigantic that
it looked stupid and I suppose the purple wasn’t too
bad. If I was honest with myself, I think I did need the
extra protection from now on - mum had convinced me of
that. It also looked like she’d convinced my boss the
same so now had two women looking out for my welfare.
#
Mum had got me
thinking and so sat at the computer and typed in
‘thunder and nappies’ to see if there was any new
research... or indeed anything to link the two –
nothing. I tried a few different browsers but came up
empty. There were tons of stuff on nappies/diapers (and
the many ways to fold them) and loads of info about
thunderstorms but the two together... zilch.
Eventually,
having read a heap of info about nappies, and that there
are people who like to wear them... and not just those
who wet their pants like me, I got bored with coming up
with no info on the two together. So, sensing the need
for a bit of TV I slipped a pair of loose green satin
boxer shorts over my bulge and set off downstairs.
Things were tight and I’m not sure they hid much but I
thought it would be better than wondering into the
living room wearing only my latest protection. My eyes
lit up when I saw the family gathered around and an open
box of Roses on the coffee table.
“So, not just
for Mrs Dewhurst then?” I nodded toward the box and
smiled at mum.
“As if...
everyone likes a choccy now and then... and I think we
all deserve a treat.”
I wasn’t
complaining and the orange creamy things were there. I
dived in.
Mum was watching
one of her soaps, dad was reading some notes from work
and Jenny still had her nose stuck in her mobile but
occasionally commented on someone on screen.
“She’s going out
with him off that hospital series.”
“She’s not.” Mum
joined in the conversation. “I thought she was going out
with Malcolm from...”
“No, no they
finished ages ago... it was in last week’s OK.”
“Ohh,” was mum’s
interested response.
She knew if OK
Magazine said so it must be true and never doubted
Jenny’s far superior knowledge about who wore what, who
was going out with who (or is that whom?) and which
celeb was cheating on another.
“Yes and now
she’s going out with that director,” Jenny was in her
element, “they’re tipping her for the next Bond girl.”
“Good heavens -
that’s a move from soap to film star isn’t it?” Mum
loved this type of gossip I think it brought them close
together because neither dad nor I were in the least bit
interested. Well I pretended not to be but I took it all
in.
#
Over the next
hour or so the TV lost some of its usual charm as they
reviewed the love history of the soap’s cast and between
us we demolished the best part of three quarters of the
chocs.
Mum saw the
diminishing amount and slipped the lid on. “Better keep
some for another day.”
Dad had fallen
asleep and mum shook him awake and pointed to bed. “You
look so tired love, why not have an early night and I’ll
be up in a minute?”
Dad nodded, got
up and kissed me and Jenny then made his way upstairs
whilst mum did a bit of tidying up and then kissed us
goodnight as well.
“Don’t stay up
too late... school tomorrow Jenny...”
“Yeah, yeah,
yeah.” We both waved mum off to bed.
“Anything
special you want to watch?” I said pointing the remote
at the TV.
“Not really
bothered.” Jenny shrugged. “Any Family Guy on anywhere?”
She mentioned as an afterthought.
I flitted
through several channels before we did land on one of
the many repeats.
“Oh, I’ve seen
this one recently... how about Mock The Week... Dave
usually has something funny on at this time.”
Dave is the
channel we rely on for a good laugh, even an old, much
repeated laugh, especially when the other channels are
absolute crap. I pressed in the channel number and saw
the credits rolling, we’d just missed one.
“I think I’ll
have an early night as well... you coming?”
“Er before you
go, erm, can I ask you something?” I was being afraid to
ask my fourteen year old sister something I should have
worked out for myself but needed her to confirm or deny
it.
“If it’s about
mixing shiny purple and shiny green I’d say go for it -
a glittering, bold combination.” Grinning she seemed
amused at her own observation.
Guiltily, I
rubbed the front of my boxers which hadn’t hidden the
bulge at all. In fact, all night, unnoticed by me, my
purple vinyl pants could be seen drooping down the leg
at times.
“Do you think
I’m getting worse?” I asked timidly.
She put down her
mag and looked over and surveyed me for a few moments
before she answered.
“What do you
think?” Typical of Jenny, she’s too clever not to find
out first what answer I want her to give. If I wanted an
answer then I’d have to answer her questions.
I fidgeted
uneasily in the seat but glad that the thick padding was
soft on my genitals.
“Well mum’s said
that I need to wear protection 24/7 so that means to
work and... well... that might be embarrassing...” I
looked to her for some response but she wanted more.
“And she’s now involved my boss Mrs Dewhurst, which I
find very disconcerting.”
I saw her
eyebrows rise at this news so that was something she
wasn’t in on. She wanted more info on
this fascinating little titbit.
“In what way is
it disconcerting?”
I’d let the cat
out of the bag now and if I didn’t tell her she’d simply
ask mum so I had nothing to lose really.
“She’s left some
stuff for her to change me if I wet at work.” I dropped
my eyes to the floor I was quite ashamed.
“Well the
question is... have you been wetting yourself at work?”
I reluctantly
nodded.
“And mum has got
your boss involved to the extent she’d prepared to
change you?”
Again I nodded.
“Well, I’m not
sure if it’s getting worse” and she pointed to my shiny
bulge, “but you have a lovely pair of pants AND two
women fussing over you... is that worse?” She had
a huge smile on her face. “To me it sounds like you’ve
hit the jackpot.”
I could
almost hear the ‘studio audience’ laughing.
This wasn’t the
way I expected the conversation to go or the direction I
thought Jenny would take but she’d answered my question.
“Is that all?”
She obviously didn’t think my predicament was all that
significant to worry about.
I nodded
“Then I’m off to
bed.” She came over and kissed my cheek. “Night-night
bro you really are...”
She didn’t
finish that last sentence so I was confused – should I
be happy or sad. Suddenly a loud cheer went up on the TV
as the comedian at Live at the Apollo introduced the
first act.
Is this a sign?
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 6
I watched the
new comedian and thought he was very funny. A young guy
from Scotland, gay and whose accent took some getting
used to but his observations were spot on. However, by
10.30 I could feel my early morning catching up and
decided bed was probably the best course of action.
Even though I’d
been sporting my newer nappy all night, and it had more
or less been on view, I hadn’t felt that it was much
different from anything else I’d worn in the past. It
was strange because everything seemed normal but it
obviously wasn’t and I couldn’t put my finger on the
reason... apart from someone my age wearing such robust
protection. Maybe wearing a nappy was becoming second
nature.
I waddled
upstairs, opened the window a bit further to let in some
air as it was still relatively warm, and removed the
satin boxers. As I checked myself and found everything
relatively dry I looked in the mirror one last time and
decided I’d worry about which trousers I should wear to
hide the bulk in the morning.
I was engulfed
with fatigue and lay out on top of the bed as it was too
warm to get under cover. There were a few animal noises
outside that I couldn’t identify and gave up trying
fairly quickly as sleep took care of everything.
I’d like to say
my dreams were filled with pleasant scenes of fun and
frolics but in truth, the only thing I can actually
remember was the taste of orange and the feeling I’d
joined Homer Simpson in one of his fantasies about
chocolate. Too much telly I suppose?
#
I woke up with
mum shaking me and saying to get up or I’d be late.
Strangely, I was just coming around from the dream about
sucking some chocolate but found I had my thumb in my
mouth. It was all moist and drippy and I wondered how
long I’d been slurping on that. The soaked pillow showed
I’d been drooling for quite some time. Yuk.
There were times
when wet nappies, thumb sucking and going off to work
just didn’t feel right or normal. Then that moment would
pass and nothing could have been more natural. In fact,
the more I thought about it, quite a lot of what was
happening was surreal and I wondered if it was actually
happening to me? Like an out of body experience.
I think I was
still in the same position I’d fallen asleep but of
course soaked. The newer, thicker nappy seemed to have
done its work and the more substantial plastic pants had
done theirs... so... just me to sort out... as normal.
Mum pulled back
the curtains and encouraged me to get up.
“Jenny’s already
gone to school, an early project she wanted to complete,
dad’s gone to an early meeting so, guess what, just you
and me for breakfast and the bathroom is all yours.”
She pointed
towards the bathroom as a little indication to get a
move on but I looked at my clock and it wasn’t that
late, I had plenty of time.
“Move it.” Mum
could see I was debating whether to take a few extra
minutes to recoup but she came over to inspect the new,
but soaked, nappy.
“How’s this
done?” She patted the front padding. “Hmmm, seems OK no
problems sleeping by the looks of things...” she smiled,
“I think these purple plastic pants are more cheerful
than any PJs you’ve had in the past. Yes, highly
recommended.”
She was having
fun and I knew she wouldn’t stop until I’d entered the
bathroom and taken a shower.
“OK, OK, I can
take a hint... jeez can’t a chap...” Actually there was
nowhere to go with that conversation as mum started to
sort out my clothes for work.
“I can do that.”
I said in annoyance.
“You could but
you haven’t, so why not shower and then I can get you
properly ready for the day ahead. Remember, we’re trying
something more substantial this time and we need to find
out what’s best to discretely hide the protection.”
There seemed
nothing wrong with mum sorting out my clothing and
getting me ready for work. She always did that when I
was at school, so toddled off to the bathroom and left
her to find the correct combination.
#
The ‘nappy bin’
had reappeared in the bathroom so that’s where I
deposited my overnight things. Mum would have them in
the washer and out on the line before I left for work
that’s for sure. The return of the nappy bin also meant
they expected this to last so I needed somewhere to dump
the used nappies on a regular basis.
I took a quick
trip to the toilet then had a thorough shower and, in
less than ten minutes, arrived back in the bedroom still
drying my hair. In that short space of time mum had got
everything ready.
“OK let’s get
your nappy on first and then you can try on some of
these.” She’d laid out nearly all my different trousers
and even some of my smarter ‘dress shorts’, as mum liked
to call them.
“As much as I
would like to mum... I’m sure the wearing of shorts is
not something anyone approves of.”
“Really?” She
seemed surprised.
“Well, over the
two years I’ve been there I’ve never seen anyone wear
them except maintenance or delivery men.”
“OK, well, we’ll
give them a miss... it’s a shame because they would work
really well and hide everything. Still...”
A nappy was
prepared waiting for me to lie out so I did. Mum took
time rubbing in the cream and sprinkling a little powder
around before she pulled and pinned the new nappy into
place. Another pair of purple plastic pants was wriggled
up my legs then she helped me up before squeezing the
excess air out from the balloon like structure.
I had a sudden
thought that perhaps I was enjoying this pampering more
than I should but that guilt soon passed to being in a
lovely comfort zone. That’s the thing, I’m more than
comfortable having mum change me... it keeps our
relationship close.
We tried several
pairs of trousers but the one that seemed to work best I
didn’t think was smart enough for work - a green canvas
style material I didn’t think were as stylish as the
shorts. Very loose, made for lounging around rather than
for anything important but I had to admit they hid
everything so much better than any of my other pants.
Mum then twinned
them with a nice tight-fitting purple and green polo
shirt (if I’d worn the shorts she recommended I could
have passed as one of Wimbledon’s ball boys) thankfully,
the ensemble didn’t look too shabby.
“Well I think
your nice green cotton shorts would have worked better
but you look fine. I should have thought and bought you
some new pants whilst in town yesterday. Perhaps you can
nip out in your lunchbreak and find something?”
I hate shopping.
Not like mum or Jenny who both love it. If it was left
to me I’d wear the same things all the time. In fact,
shorts and t-shirt, with an occasional hoodie thrown in
is all I feel I ever need. If it wasn’t for mum and
aunties seeing something they think will ‘suit’ me I’m
sure I’d still be wearing my old school uniform.
In fact, I was
sure I still had it in my wardrobe.
However, the
comforting bulge under my canvas pants was hidden and I
felt able to go to work and not worry about anyone
noticing.
#
The weather
proved to be hottest week of the year so far and I had
to admit that wearing a nappy with plastic pants made me
sweat quite a lot. However, the fabric soaked it all up
and apart from an occasional ride up in the folds I
managed to cope. Most of the week I managed to get to
the toilet before I peed myself, so, in the end only
needed Mrs Dewhurst’s involvement on one occasion.
I got regular
internal emails on my computer asking if I needed a
change. To be honest she asked me a couple of times a
day but on this one occasion I was soaked and didn’t
remember doing so. In fact, I’d only been to the toilet
a few minutes earlier before it happened. I guess this’s
why mum insists I wear a nappy... it takes away the
risk.
I sent the
simple response YES and she told me to wait ten minute,
whilst she closed her office blinds and then she’d call
me in. I was shaking again but didn’t know if it was
from being in Mrs Dewhurst proximity or the fact I’d wet
some more.
This system
worked well and I don’t think we aroused any suspicion
when she asked if I could give her a hand with something
in her office. Once there she locked the door and I
could see everything laid out ready. I was a bit
disappointed because there was no box of Roses anywhere
to be seen. The problem I had was that I could taste the
orange delight already and knew that I’d need something
to distract me if she was going to be using a couple of
wipes down below.
I know, I know,
wanting a treat was very childish and there were times I
did feel like a kid when in her office. The other thing
I’d noticed, though tried to ignore, was I became
totally compliant in her presence.
She smiled as I
looked apprehensive.
“First, I’ve
approved your request for Monday off... “
“Thanks, mum
wants us to have some time at the coast.”
“Sounds nice,”
she saw me still looking a little unsure. “Don’t worry
I’ve been practicing on Julie my daughter so I’ve got it
down to a fine art.”
I nodded and
loosened my canvas pants.
“These aren’t
what you usually wear,” she observed.
I grimaced
because I knew they weren’t really smart enough.
“No, sorry, but
because the padding is thicker I needed something that,
you know, didn’t call attention in the office... I don’t
want people to know that I’m wetting my pants at my
age.”
“No, I
understand and that’s sensible.”
“Mum thinks my
dress shorts...” I was making small talk as she got on
with pulling my pants and plastic pants off (she did go
“Ooh nice” when she saw the purple) and unpinned the
soaked nappy.
“Don’t you like
wearing shorts then?” She wiped away and I took a deep
breath as its cool wetness surrounded my naked pubic
area.
“Actually I
prefer them to trousers,” I said finding my voice “and
would wear them all the time if it was allowed.”
“Well, who said
it wasn’t?” She’d already had me lift up so she could
run the fresh fabric under my bum.
“Erm, well, um,
I’ve never seen anyone else in the office wear them so I
assumed it, erm...”
The thing is...
I always prefer to wear shorts because I think they suit
me better. I feel it’s the real me and I’m not
pretending to be someone I’m not. Mum and dad are used
to seeing me wearing them around the house and I think
mum is of the opinion they suit me best as well. She
always says I look smart when we go anywhere... and has
done ever since I was little.
“You’re a young
man,” Mrs Dewhurst continued, rubbing in some anti-rash
cream, “so I can’t see why not, especially as the
weather is so hot. As long as they aren’t gaudy coloured
board shorts or swimwear... I can’t see any problem”
“But none of the
others do.” I mentioned as she sprinkled powder.
“To be honest
there are those who I’d prefer not to see in shorts but
you’re youthful and shouldn’t worry. I’m happy if you,
or anyone else who want to wear them to the office for
that matter, to do so. Especially if you think they
would hide the padding better.” She pulled up a pair of
see-thru pants and then told me to retrieve my canvas
joggers. “It’s up to you but there’s no rule saying you
can’t.”
Well, that was
interesting. Changed and being told shorts were fine. I
think, with the weather how it was, shorts would be a
lot better idea and maybe some air could get up my pant
leg and keep me from over-heating there.
I smiled my
thanks as I left her office and she called a “Thank you
for your help” for the rest of the office to hear.
No one looked up
or batted an eyelid.
#
For the next few
of days I wore shorts to work and although there were a
couple of remarks from older colleagues (shouldn’t I be
in school) no one was nasty and when other young members
of staff followed my lead that was an end to any
comments. Anyway, we’d got the seal of approval from the
supervisor so there was no argument. I think we all felt
better for air getting to our legs and I had to agree
with mum again, shorts were a lot smarter than the
canvas pants.
In fact, though
I was still wearing a nappy the tight cotton of the
shorts seemed to hold everything in place so the bulge
wasn’t that noticeable. The legs came to about three
inches above my knees so no plastic could venture into
view and the firmness gave me so much confidence I
wasn’t worried about wearing protection at all.
To be honest I
was in my element and, though I’m not sure why, each day
seemed to just zoom by. In fact, both mum and Mrs
Dewhurst said the same thing; contrary to what some
might have expected, I appeared so much happier.
#
By Friday I was
so confident about my control in not filling a nappy I
suggested to mum that for our drive to the coast with
Mrs Symanski I wear normal underwear.
“Are you sure, I
mean she already knows about your problem so you
wouldn’t be...”
“No, no, it’s
not that,” Actually it was that and was shocked someone
else knew about my old problem. “I just think I’ve got a
handle on it and know when to... you know... anticipate
things.”
Despite what I
said I wasn’t that confident as when I started my
request and that was down to the fact that I was more
than a bit annoyed mum had shared my ‘secret’ with our
old neighbour.
“Mum, how does
Mrs Symanski know about...?”
“I’m sorry love
but we’ve been neighbours since you were born... so...
don’t you think she’s seen you at your best and...
wettest over that time. And, if I’m honest, she’s been a
fantastic source of knowledge for most of that time.”
“But
mummm...” Yes I know that childish whine again.
She shrugged as
if to say it’s wasn’t the biggest secret in the world
and shouldn’t matter that much.
“Look, if you’re
sure you don’t want a nappy, although I think you’re
making a mistake, then of course it’s up to you.
However, I’ll be bringing something with me because,
although the nice weather is predicted to continue,
there may be sudden storms brewing so I’ll not take any
chances.” She smiled but I knew she meant it.
#
Friday night,
and hoping to prove a point, I slept in my clean Adidas
shorts without a nappy underneath. Both my parents had
tried to convince me that it was too early but I was
determined to break the control my bladder had over me.
I woke up in the
morning and nervously felt the front of my shorts...
they were a little damp. I checked and it looked like
I’d done a small pee. I felt stupid but didn’t want to
admit it. I got up, washed my shorts through so to all
intents and purposes, nothing had happened. I showered
and got ready wearing white briefs and my new favourite
uniform of dress shorts and polo shirt. I chose pale
blue, mid-length shorts and a green and blue paisley
short-sleeved shirt... I looked the dog’s bollocks.
At breakfast I
said nothing about my little spurt and as mum had loaded
the car pretty soon we were on our way to pick up our
talkative neighbour. It was a beautiful sunny Saturday
and I just hoped that not everyone else would be heading
to the coast otherwise it would be an even longer
journey in the company of Mrs Symanski.
She was waiting
at her door with a large wheelie suitcase and looking
like she’d dressed for a summer pageant - a flowery
dress, large sun hat and a huge handbag which I suspect
could hold as much as her suitcase.
Anyway, I
volunteered to take control of her suitcase and rolled
it to the boot and slid it in between our more
conservative packing. Before I could claim my front
passenger seat back she’d climbed in so I was left with
the back seat all to myself. Well, not quite, as I was
now sharing it with Mrs Symanski large hat. She kept her
ginormous bag on her knee.
“My Anthony you
do look smart... very summery.” She beamed her toothy
smile, “and Mary, you look lovely as well.”
“That’s a lovely
dress you’re wearing...” Mum countered and, as we set
off that was the subject of conversation for the next
half hour. Where she was when she saw it. How she wasn’t
sure about it and went back a couple of times before
deciding to buy it... and a host of other pretty boring
things related to how often she’s worn it, the choice of
wearing it today and the fact she thought it made her
look younger. How mum could keep any trace of interest
in her voice I’ll never know.
#
Despite her
constant forensic review and inclusion of every minor
detail, I took the opportunity to nod a little bit, so
the two hour drive fairly flew by and we were soon off
the A-roads and onto the country lanes that led to Mrs
Symanski sister’s cottage near the coast. Unfortunately,
as sometimes happens on such roads, a farmer was herding
his cows from one field to another and that held up the
traffic. I could also feel I urgently needed the toilet
but, as we hadn’t stopped, merely drove slowly on. I
couldn’t get out and... too late.
Although I knew
I needed to go, which was an improvement to when I had
no idea I’d wet at work, when the flood broke, I had no
control.
I closed my eyes
and unprepared, my bladder exploded in my pale blue
shorts drenching them and my briefs. When I opened my
eyes I saw Mrs Symanski looking at me and watching the
wet stain quickly covering the front changing from pale
to dark blue.
“Mary, I thought
you said he was back in nappies.”
That comment
didn’t help but I was in no position to complain.
“No, he says he
has control now so doesn’t need...”
“Well I think
you’d better pull over because he’s pissed his pants
pretty badly.”
I could have
done without her pithy observation but she wasn’t wrong.
“Oh... just a
minute Anthony whilst I find somewhere to pull in.”
Mrs Symanski
kept her eyes on me the whole time as I fidgeted in
shame on the back seat.
“Mind my hat.”
Was the only other thing she said until we were past the
herd that sauntered into a field and we joined the line
of cars through to the next village. There was a car
park so mum drove to the furthest corner and for the
first time was able to see the damage.
“Oh Anthony, I
said this might happen.” She wasn’t so much angry as
resigned that she needed to change me when it could have
been avoided if I’d only listened.
She got out the
car and rummaged around in the boot and brought out a
large pack of Abena Abri-Form Premium M4. I was
surprised because mum doesn’t use disposables as a rule.
“I’ve come
prepared sweetheart... I hope these will do.”
“Mum, leave it
until we get to the hotel... I can wait.” I pleaded.
“Don’t be stupid
Anthony,” this was Mrs Symanski, “You don’t want to be
sat around in pee-soaked pants you’ll smell and then the
car will smell and...”
“Yes, yes,” mum
interrupted her flow, “I think we’ve got this covered
thank you.”
She looked at
Mrs Symanski who sniffed but said nothing else.
“Take off
everything that’s wet please.”
I didn’t want to
especially with Mrs Symanski sitting in the front seat.
However, the alternative was being changed out in the
open where any passing person could see, and didn’t
fancy that, no matter how sunny the day was. I tried one
last time.
“Mum I can
wait... honestly.”
Mum gave me that
look that meant she was not to be swayed, so reluctantly
I unbuttoned my shorts and pulled them free.
“....and your
undies... and the shirt it looks like the bottom has got
a bit wet.”
#
So naked, on the
back seat of our car I was bright red with
embarrassment, feeling stupid and childish after what
had just happened. Mum handed me a small hand towel and
some wipes.
“Can I help
love?” Mrs Symanski had changed from judging me to being
her helpful self. She gazed at me and shrugged. “Don’t
worry Anthony these things happen even to the best of
us.”
I was only half
listening but did that sound like she was admitting to
wetting herself or was she just trying to be nice?
“If you can hold
these.”
Mum offered the
unopened package to her whilst she put my wet clothes in
a plastic bag.
“Oh I’ve heard
these are nice dear... thick and fluffy,” she smiled, “I
wish they had them like this when my kids were babies.”
“Babies?” I
wasn’t a baby... it annoyed me that she thought that...
or at least said that even if she didn’t direct it at
me. I wished she wasn’t here to
witness this but unfortunately there was no escape as
mum seemed determined to get me cleaned up with or
without an audience... our neighbour wasn’t one for
privacy.
Mrs Symanski’s
family were all grown up now. She had three daughters
and two sons. The daughters were married and living in
Poland, one of her son’s had emigrated to Australia and
her youngest, Stephan, worked out on the oil rigs but
rarely visited his mother.
Always the
master of small talk she launched into what nappies were
like as she was raising her brood. Thankfully it was
quite distracting as mum made sure I was dry before
adding the thick gloopy mass of anti-rash cream she
smoothed in. All the time Mrs Symanski kept up a litany
of things she didn’t have that parents were lucky to
have these days. Including such well-made disposables as
were now being successfully taped into place around my
groin and the new shiny purple plastic pants which she
thought were ‘adorable’.
I have to admit
that the disposable was so much quicker and mum had
everything done in super quick time.
She eventually
slammed the car boot closed and, as if making a point,
didn’t hand me any shorts to cover myself up. I thought
it was her way of making sure I knew in future not to go
against her advice. The rest of the trip I sat in a
thick nappy and ‘adorable’ plastic pants whilst Mrs
Symanski went on about the last time she’d visited her
sister and the rows they had.
I could imagine
it, especially if they were as talkative as each other.
Occasionally she
would turn to me if she was making a point and stare at
my padding and smile. I wasn’t sure what was going on in
her head but I’m sure it would make another tale to tell
on any future journey. I just hoped I wouldn’t be there
when it happened.
Eventually we
arrived at her sister’s place and they were all hugs and
smiles as they embraced each other. Whilst I’d gone to
get our neighbour’s case I also retrieved a pair of
football shorts to quickly cover the padding. I hoped
the two old ladies wouldn’t pass comment but her sister
noticed and with an air of some authority asked if I was
OK and did I need somewhere to change.
“No love he’s
only just been changed,” she helpfully explained to her
sister, “He peed his pants on the way...”
I’m sure she
could have gone on for another twenty minutes but I was
so embarrassed I ran to the car told mum to put her foot
down and get out of this place.
“She was only
being friendly.”
I said we would
be there the entire weekend if we engaged in further
‘pleasant little chats’.
Mum laughed at
my joke and with a final wave we were on our way to the
hotel, which was about five miles further down the
coast.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 7
The hotel was
set in quite a pretty area and had a sign that proudly
proclaimed ‘200yds to the Beach’ down an unmade road.
The coast could quite easily be seen from where we stood
at the car park so was hopeful my room would have a nice
sea view.
I pulled our
case from the boot.
“Don’t forget
the nappies.” Mum chided me for not picking them up.
I sighed but
knew she’d made a point earlier.
I went back and
got them and tried to hide what they were between me and
the two small wheelie cases. I caught mum up in
reception where an elderly gentleman was just checking
out. I hoped all the clientele weren’t his age.
Once the man
left with a greasy ‘Thank you’ to the pretty young
receptionist she turned her attention to us. I saw her
briefly scan our luggage and no doubt noticed the large
pack of disposables. They weren’t that easy to disguise.
“Reservation for
Turner,” mum smiled her smile at the receptionist.
I was hoping
against hope that this girl, who couldn’t have been much
older than me, hadn’t noticed or if she had didn’t
automatically think they were for me.
“Ah yes, twin
room, second floor Room 21.”
Mum handed the
girl her credit card and the transaction passed off
without incident. She received a similar looking card as
the key and I wondered where my card was.
“Mum, what room
am I in?”
“You’re with me
silly.”
I was just about
to demand (well as much as I demand anything) that she
book me my own room when she gently squeezed my padded
bottom and asked quietly if I needed a change.
I nervously
turned to check if the receptionist had heard but she
was on the phone and chatting to someone else.
“Muummm.”
Yes it was that whine again.
“I think it best
that we stay as close together as possible don’t you?”
It wasn’t a question more a statement as she led us up
to our room.
There were two
quite large beds, a separate bathroom and thankfully our
view did look out over the gardens and towards the sea.
“Mum I’m
eighteen surely I should have...” She squeezed my thick
nappy again. That shut up any further discussion.
“I don’t know
about you but it’s almost lunchtime so how about
something to eat before we spend time on the beach?”
I was hungry so
we quickly unpacked the few things we’d brought. Mum
asked me to change out of the football shorts and wear
something decent. The other nice pair she reminded me,
was soaked and wrapped in a plastic bag in the car. She
wasn’t going to let me forget my misdemeanour, well not
just yet anyway.
“Do you need a
change before we go?”
I shook my head
thinking how I’d brought this on myself.
“OK Anthony,
that was the last jibe and I want us to have a good time
together so... I’m not going to ask again as long as you
let me know straight away if you do need changing. Do we
have a deal?”
“Yes,”
and then I was overcome with regret, “sorry mum I should
have listened to you.”
“You should
always listen to your mother.” She said stroking my
hair and gently kissed the top of my head. “A mother
always knows what her children need... even if they
don’t.”
I smiled and
nodded now we were back to our usual selves. I slipped
into my favourite dark green shorts.
#
After a rather
nice lunch at the hotel bar we went back to the room...
I was wet. As we’d planned a couple
of hours taking advantage of the glorious weather and
lying out on the beach it meant I didn’t need changing
except into my swimming trunks.
“Seems like a
plan.” Mum said “However, don’t forget to give yourself
a wipe down before you put them on.”
“No mum.” I said
in some exasperation.
We got ready and
mum looked pretty good in her swimsuit and I looked like
her young son in my pale blue Speedos. This was what I
meant by not buying much new stuff, I’d had these
Speedos for ages and although a very tight fit, didn’t
want to lose them.
Mum looked down
at my crotch. “It really is time to get something
better... look... why not wear your football shorts
instead?”
“Because they
become see through once they’re wet.”
“OK, but put
them over your trunks until we get to the beach at
least... they look painful.”
Although I
didn’t want to admit it once again mum was right, I must
have grown a little since last time I’d worn them
because they were very tight indeed but I hadn’t bought
any new ones. It’s silly really as I had loads of shorts
I could have brought. I felt a bit stupid that I’d only
brought the Speedos, perhaps in future I should let mum
pack my bag.
I could see mum
was still debating with herself whether it would be
advisable for me to wear a disposable but, if I intended
going in the sea at some point that would be a waste.
“OK, let’s get
going shall we?”
We packed a
couple of towels and hoped that the beach would have
loungers and parasols.
#
The beach was
crowded and it seemed everyone had decided to spend
Saturday making the most of a British summer, because
you never knew how long it was going to last.
I looked around
and there seemed to be kids of all ages screaming,
playing footy, tossing Frisbees, batting balls, swimming
and floating. Right next to where we pitched our towels
(no loungers left) was a family with three boys and a
baby girl having a picnic.
Mum did what
mums do and said to the wife how beautiful and cute her
baby daughter was and added how well behaved her boys
were.
“You should have
been here ten minutes ago... they were running riot but
hopefully, with a bit of grub in them, they’ll calm down
a bit.”
We all laughed
as the boys looked up chomping on some kind of meaty
sandwich stuck in their mouths.
We lay out and I
spread some sun tan lotion on mum’s back and she did the
same to me. I’d wriggled out of the footy shorts by then
and just lay in my Speedos.
“Is this your
boy?” the woman asked.
“Yes, Anthony...
say hello.”
“Oh hello.”
“What Year is he
in?” She pointed to obviously the eldest son, “Johnny,
he’s in Year 6, this one is in Year 4 and these two...
still at home with mummy.” She smiled and rubbed her
youngest son’s tummy so he giggled hysterically.
I was pretty
indignant. Why had she asked mum and not me and...
bloody cheek... she thought I was still at school.
Mum saw I’d gone
red, and not because of the sun, so changed the
conversation.
“Well he seems a
joyful little chap,” mum was looking at the chuckling
little handful and I could see he was still wearing
padding under his little Minion shorts.
“Let’s hope it
lasts,” the woman replied knowingly.
“I think I’ll go
for a swim.” I needed to get away from that family set
up. I didn’t want to be dragged in to this exchange of
pleasantries.
“Oh OK.” Mum
acknowledged.
As I got up to
leave so did the other two boys. “We’ll come and join
you.” It wasn’t a request.
So we ventured
down to the water’s edge where I was going to dare them
to take the plunge. I didn’t need to dare them as they
both dove in and swam easily in the cold sea.
Now I was in a
quandary. I wasn’t actually planning on swimming, just a
bit of paddling but I couldn’t be shown up by these two
kids. Besides, I suddenly felt my Speedos getting warm
and I realised my leg was shaking and unconsciously
peeing so I needed to get in quickly. However, the
eldest noticed before I had chance to submerge.
“You’re s’posed
to wait until you get in the water before you pee.” He
laughed.
I was quite
embarrassed and decided not to respond so spent a few
minutes surface diving and hoping they’d go away.
However, every time I resurfaced they’d be there and
wanting to chat.
Eventually I
could put them off any longer and they introduced
themselves Johnny, who I knew was eleven and nine year
old Kevin... they were from Bradford and went to a
school whose name I didn’t catch. I told them my home
town and they wanted to know which year I was in.
“I work, I left
school at sixteen and found a...”
“You work?”
Johnny sounded incredulous. “What, you’re sixteen... we
thought you’d be in Year 6 like me... wow... “
I didn’t know
what to say so I dove under the water and hoped to
change the subject when I resurfaced.
Although it had
been commented on before, my slim stature had never
bothered me and I didn’t know why it was doing so now. I
am who I am but more than once, when out with the
family, it has been assumed I was barely older than
Jenny. It’s annoying when you get handed the Children’s
Menu. Dad just takes it off me and hands it back to the
waiter or waitress and asks for a proper menu. At this
point they’re usually a little flustered but after
apologising are super attentive.
#
When I did
resurface they’d got chatting to another group of kids
so I took the opportunity to slowly backstroke myself
away. Although it was summer the sea wasn’t that warm
and whilst I was getting used to it could feel my
genitals shrink to nothing. I then began to think that I
didn’t want to get out because folk would see I had no
bulge, which was at odds when I wore a nappy because of
course that gave me a significant outline around my
pubic region.
This was stupid.
I didn’t really want to swim I just wanted to relax in
the sun and hopefully get some rays on my pale body. I
ventured back and thankfully noticed mum was laid out
and asleep or at least not engaged in chat any more. I
stretched out beside her and she looked over and
shrugged. She must have known I’d had a bit of a trial.
“Mum.”
“Yes love.”
“Just give me a
shove to turn over in about twenty minutes.”
“OK.”
The sound of
waves gently rolling in and astonishingly, even the
sound of the seagulls and noise of the crowd lulled me
into a deep relaxation. I settled down and, once I
wriggled about and got myself comfortable, drifted off.
With the sun
beating down my body warmed nicely and although I was
aware of the sounds around, they didn’t intrude as
different thoughts floated into my head. I was on the
cusp of sleep and wakefulness when a dream took hold and
I was with those three boys.
They were
pointing and laughing because they said I wet my pants.
I was trying to hide away but when I turned they could
see the padding and purple plastic pants bursting out
from behind my tiny Speedos, which only encouraged them
to jeer more. They began to push me and I felt small and
abused and couldn’t fight back. Their pushes turned more
aggressive to shoves and were taunting ‘baby pants,
baby pants, baby pants’.
I came too with
a start and almost in tears but mum was gently shaking
my shoulder telling me to turn over.
Relief.
I looked over to
the family and they were all sprawled out and sunbathing
quietly. I was just about to turn over when I realised I
was shaking and peeing into my Speedos. There was quite
a flood and I knew that the towel was going to be soaked
and I dreaded anyone, especially the kids opposite,
knowing what I’d done.
Mum saw the
anxious look on my face.
“Are you alright
sweetheart?”
However, my slow
response and look of shame told her exactly what had
happened.
Although the sky
out to sea was a wonderful shade of blue, back the other
way dark clouds were amassing overland. It looked like
another summer storm was brewing.
“OK Anthony,
enough sun for the moment let’s get back to the hotel
and...” she nodded towards my swimming trunks but didn’t
finish the sentence. “Thankfully, we don’t have far to
go so... just wrap the towel around your waist.”
To be honest I
couldn’t get away quick enough but as I rushed I saw
Johnny wave and smile a friendly smile, “Nice meeting
you Anthony.” I felt guilty for casting him as a villain
who would make fun of my predicament.
I sneakily held
the towel covering my trunks so it wouldn’t show just
how wet either was. Thankfully, sand had attached itself
to my wet outline so as we walked away I pretended to
shake it off. I’m not sure if it worked and no one was
any the wiser but I thought I’d handled the situation
quite well.
#
However, as I
stood under the shower back at the hotel watching sand
and stale urine getting washed down the plughole I
wondered why I’d had that half-dream. Apart from the
fact that they thought I was younger than I am there was
no inkling that they regarded me as anything but a new
friend. I assumed that’s why I had that, that
hallucination, but didn’t know if it was the reason
I peed myself. It could have been because I felt
threatened but whatever the reason I don’t think mum
will be keen on my return to underpants anytime soon.
I rinsed out my
Speedos and hung them on the showerhead to dry and then
dried myself. Mum was sat on her bed as I entered from
the bathroom and I saw she had the pack of disposables
all ready.
“You’ve wet
yourself twice today sweetheart...”
“Three... I’ve
wet three times... sorry mum.”
“It’s OK dear
but I think it’s these until we get home.” She dangled
an unopened Abena M4.
I nodded and
hadn’t actually minded wearing the one I was changed
into in the car park. Like Mrs Symanski said, they were
quite soft, fluffy and fitted surprisingly well. Oddly I
had that taste of orange chocolate in my mouth and
wondered if mum had brought some with her. When I asked
her she said she hadn’t so didn’t let on about the
strange ‘tang’ in my mouth.
Mum helped me
dry off and thought we should look around the garden and
perhaps take a walk along the cliff tops before the
storm came. It seemed as good an idea as any.
She spread out
the full disposable on my bed and got me to lie out.
Somehow she had a tube of anti-rash cream and smoothed
that around before pulling the tapes together and
fastening me in. She started looking in one of the draws
and I saw she’d also brought a selection of vinyl pants.
Obviously she’d suspected I’d need them at some point.
They were in various colours but I chose a dark blue
pair and slipped them up and over the disposable. There
was a look in mum’s eye and I couldn’t work out if it
was the inevitability of what she’d done or whether
approval of the fit. Either way she passed me the rest
of my clothes and before too long we had viewed the
garden and launched ourselves along the cliff tops.
#
It was nice just
sauntering along. The views out to sea were
breath-taking and we could see four large ships on the
horizon, together with a couple of yacht and several
small fishing boats. People were still splashing and
swimming around in the surf below and the screams
overhead of the cacophonous birdlife all added to that
awe-inspiring moment. On top of that, a pleasant cool
breeze wafted around and up my shorts keeping me
satisfyingly refreshed.
We chatted and
laughed about nothing in particular but mum did have
some choice and amusing things to recount regarding Mrs
Symanski. She wasn’t nasty or gossipy just some of the
silly, long-winded ways she explained things. Although
as a family we are very close, I’d never felt closer to
mum than I did on that walk. We hugged and walked arm in
arm like we used to do when I was just a little kid...
it was wonderful. The weather was warm and the sun shone
– everything was just perfect.
In fact, apart
from Mrs Symanski witnessing my accident, this was
turning out to be a brilliant break and I’m so glad we
were able to take this together. It might have been
nicer for all the family to be here but I wasn’t
complaining mum was such great company.
We seemed to
walk for miles but I suppose it wasn’t really all that
far. The earlier threatening clouds appeared to have
broken up and mum checked the forecast on her phone.
Although it did say ‘possible intermittent thunder
showers’ it seemed that today, in our little piece of
paradise, it decided not to bother. With the breeze
rushing around my groin mum’s ‘standby’ protection
didn’t feel a burden and I was beginning to enjoy the
caress of an M4. I’d never had to wear one before... and
I liked it.
#
In the evening,
on the recommendation of the hotel, we ate at a
restaurant just a few doors away from where we were
staying even receiving a voucher for a free bottle of
Prosecco if you bought two main meals.
Mum got a few
disapproving looks from some of the other diners as she
filled up my glass to accompany the fine roast leg of
lamb with garlic and rosemary, accompanied by a medley
of fresh local farm vegetables, we both enjoyed.
I overheard
someone say it was disgraceful that she should be
letting a child drink alcohol but by then I was happy in
letting them think I was younger. After all, it wouldn’t
be the first time today.
We giggled like
school kids on the walk back to the hotel and only just
made it before the clouds burst and a torrential shower
drove the happy holiday-makers off the streets.
We watched a bit
of TV before bed but when I undressed I was surprised to
see I’d soaked the disposable. I never realised or
noticed until I took down my shorts and plastic pants. I
sighed but mum must have heard me and came into the
bathroom and told me not to worry. I wasn’t worrying but
grateful that mum had brought extra protection. I
cleaned myself up and mum rubbed in more cream. She also
commented on how nice they felt and made a big thing
about fluffing them out and getting me to lie out before
pulling everything together and taping me in.
“They look
good,” she said as she threaded fresh plastic pants over
them, “do you want to go to sleep or watch a bit more
telly?”
It was only
about ten so we opted for a film that was about to
start. I only saw about half of it before I was yawning
and sliding between the welcoming covers of my bed. I
don’t think mum was long after me, whilst the disposable
felt large, fluffy, welcoming... so it was easy to fall
asleep.
#
Mary Turner
wasn’t sure why she woke up but intuition made her aware
of... something. There was a low mewling sound she could
hear but wasn’t sure where it was coming from. She
looked at her phone, 3.32, she would have shrugged and
gone back to sleep except that sad noise was still
there.
A distant
flash lit up the window and illuminated the outline of
her son.
“Anthony...
Anthony are you... alright?” She spoke quietly as the
night often makes people do.
No reply.
She turned on
the bedside lamp which was of a very low wattage so
wasn’t very effective in illuminating the entire room.
However, it was powerful enough for her to see her son
kneeing on the sofa and staring out into the night sky.
“Anthony,
Anthony.” She whispered.
Still no
reply - so got out of bed noticing his bloated, bright,
shiny purple plastic pants glowing even under such soft
lighting. Silently she walked over to where he was
kneeling. The soft sound she’d heard was now evident her
son was sucking his thumb, shaking and making gentle
little cries.
Over the
years she’d found him in similar circumstances after a
storm and the image almost always made her think about
that time in a tent in France. Even now, all these years
later, he looked so small and juvenile, like a little
kid, vulnerable and anxiously waiting for something.
However,
although as a child he cried if it thundered, she’d not
heard him react that way recently.
His eyes were
open and she followed his gaze. Although the sky was
clear and the stars and planets shone brightly, over on
the far horizon soft distant flashes indicated a storm
out to sea. She listened but could hear no rumbling so
assumed it was too far away.
She’d heard
no storm pass nearby so perhaps it hadn’t woken him...
in fact... she wasn’t sure he was awake. But how then
had he known there was a storm? Although his eyes were
open and was staring out to sea, there was no reaction
when she gently stroked his hair and tenderly wrapped
her arm around his waist.
“Come on
sweetie, let’s get you back into bed.”
Although it
was dark, the occasional distant flash vaguely lit up
his face but his eyes barely registered what he saw.
However, his thumb sucking got more fervent as his
mother tried to rouse him.
Aware that
the storm must be having some influence she checked.
Slipping her hand down the front of his plastic pants
and the poor boy was saturated. She examined the back
and it was waterlogged, probably meaning the disposable
had taken a few soakings.
“Oh
sweetie...”
She gently
pulled his thumb from his lips and guided him towards
the bathroom. He walked as if in a daze but at least
moving under his own power no matter how slowly. Once
there she pulled down the bloated plastic cover and
released the tabs, the disposable flopped with a sodden
splat onto the tiled flooring. Anthony had no idea what
was going on but thankfully the mewling had stopped and,
his mother hoped, so had his peeing.
However, she wanted to get him back into fresh
disposable as soon as possible just in case he started
again.
#
As If on
auto-pilot a slightly trembling Anthony lay out on the
cold tiled floor whilst his mother quickly wiped him
down before going to retrieve a couple of fresh M4s. She
expertly lifted his legs and placed the thick fabric
under his bottom and then, with some effort, taped him
in. Using the same pair of plastic pants, she tugged
them up and over the double padding but it was a
squeeze.
Pulling him
to his feet she checked all was safely gathered behind
the plastic cover and then led him back to bed and
covered him with a blanket. Sitting on the bed and
stroking his hair she wasn’t sure what to make of this
development. Perhaps this was how he’d been when he
witnessed that lightning strike back home.
Between them
both Mary and her husband had wondered if that strike
might have had more of an effect than their son
realised. He did seem to need nappies more but otherwise
he was functioning normally. That link between a
thunderstorm and Anthony’s reaction to them had been an
issue for many years... but why?
That was the
question that absorbed her as she continued to stroke
his hair to comfort him. It was if time had simply been
rolled back ten or so years, Anthony looked so young,
innocent and totally dependent on her.
Meanwhile,
his right hand found its way from under the covers and
his thumb found its way between his lips. A soft
slurping noise could just be heard as he turned on his
side, closed his eyes and slipped back into a deep
sleep.
Mary sat for
a short while longer wondering what to say come the
morning but, as there was nothing she could do there and
then, returned to her own bed. After turning off her
bedside light, she saw a few distant flashes barely
light up the room and soon found herself also drifting
off.
# # #
...to be
continued
Part 8
“C’mon
sweetheart breakfast is being served in the garden...
and it’s such a beautiful morning I don’t want to miss
any of it.”
Mum had just
nudged me awake and I was barely conscious as she raved
on about what we might do for the rest of the day. She
seemed pretty immersed in a “Things to do...” brochure.
“Yeah, yeah OK,
erm, what’s this?”
I’d reached
under the blanket and detected that my padding was
thicker than usual... it was also wet as usual but...
“Oh yes, well
sweetie, last night you did a bit of sleep-walking and
spent some time at the window,” she nodded towards it so
I knew exactly which window she meant. “You were
watching a storm on the horizon but you’d saturated your
nappy so I had to put you in a fresh one.”
“Really, I mean,
I don’t remember getting up... or you changing me...”
“No love, I
think you were in some sort of trance but... you were
very, very wet so I changed you.” She smiled her winning
smile. “So sharing a room wasn’t such a bad idea...
hmmm? C’mon, get up and let’s make a start on the day.”
I pulled back
the cover and revealed my bulky plastic pants.
“So, I seem to
have wet twice last night...” I shrugged patting the
large squishy cushion I was wearing.
“Twice, maybe
more...” she shook her head as if there was more to it
but she didn’t want to say, “those were just as a
precaution but look like they paid off.”
The thickness
spread my legs a bit and although this was nothing new,
I did feel like a toddler as I tried to rise from my
bed.
“Did the storm
wake you as well?” I asked hoping she wouldn’t notice I
was struggling a bit.
“Actually, I
don’t think the storm came anywhere near us...” she
looked out the window, “I can’t see any puddles or any
evidence that it rained last night so, it might have
only been out at sea.”
As she searched
for any tell-tale signs I managed to wriggle myself out
of bed and stood in wonder at the huge glassy pants
surrounding my wet nappy.
“I wonder why...
it doesn’t make any sense if it didn’t wake me up... I
mean...” I didn’t remember anything about last night and
now I felt completely detached from what went on.
“That’s why
you’re in nappies...” she smiled in encouragement,
“They’re there to protect you from a wet bed.
Thankfully, they do what they’re supposed to do and you
seem none-the-worse for it. So, sleepy head... c’mon,
let’s get you changed and see what delicacies they have
for breakfast.”
Her eighteen
year-old son, wearing a huge swollen nappy didn’t seem
to faze her at all as she urged me to get a move on.
#
I did my toilet,
had a quick shower and was back ready for mum to do her
thing and wrap me up for the day.
“Do you think
you can handle two?” She was rummaging around in the
pack of disposables.
“I don’t think I
could get my shorts over two so let’s not push it. I
should be alright with what I normally wear.”
She inspected me
thoroughly for any redness or rashes before rubbing in
cream and taping me in.
“I really like
these Abenas... they don’t half give me a soft
reassuring hug.” I enthused.
“Good, but don’t
get used to them, they’re expensive and... only for
special occasions when we can’t do such personal
laundry. It will be back to fabric when we get home.”
“In that case, I
better make full use of them,” I teased.
I slipped into
my green shorts and a pale blue crew-necked t-shirt
“Ready.”
“Have you got
everything you’ll need for the day?” She said as she
held out my small backpack that I knew held a couple of
disposables and various other bits and bobs should the
weather turn.
“I have now
thanks. I’m starved.” I kissed mum on the cheek and we
set off to find a nice place to have breakfast in the
garden.
Mum went to
discuss something with reception; I suppose it was about
entry to some of the places we were planning on
visiting, whilst I found a corner table for two. I
hadn’t realised just how thirsty I was so before mum
arrived back I’d sunk two large glasses of orange juice.
(I wonder if
this is why I keep getting a tang of orange in my
mouth... the amount of OJ I drink?)
Although mum
settled for a bowl of mixed fruit followed by croissants
and a pot of tea for breakfast I was hungry and decided
on scrambled egg, toast and bacon. They were very
generous with the rashers and I ate the lot then needed
another large glass of orange to help it all down.
We chatted about
mum’s plans, she wanted to visit two nearby sites which
for some reason, when we came before, she never got
round to seeing. She also asked if I wanted to go back
to the beach and I said that if the sun was still
shining when we’d done her tour I wouldn’t mind a little
lie out.
“OK then, that’s
what we’ll do.” She shoved the last piece of buttered
croissant in her mouth with an air of comic finality,
whilst I sank the last of the juice.
I thought it was
a great start to the day.
#
Before we left
mum was making reservations, well, asking the
receptionist, to make reservations, at a restaurant we’d
been recommended when chatting to people the previous
day. Meanwhile, as I stood around with my backpack
perched strategically on my shoulders I noticed a girl I
thought I recognised waiting. She had sunglasses on, so
I wasn’t too sure but I made myself known anyway.
“Hi, Trinny
isn’t it?” I smiled what I hoped was a winning rather
than predatory smile.
“Who’s asking.”
She was very offhand but at least she was talking.
“It’s me,
Anthony, Anthony Turner from...”
“Ah, from
school, Year 5... Mrs Anghar’s class?”
“Year 11
actually.” Yes it was definitely her. She was always
putting me down because of my size and it looked like
things hadn’t changed.
The thing was,
now I’d made contact I remembered I didn’t like her much
and she didn’t like me but... we’re grown-ups now so
hopefully...
“You still in
class?” She was off hand but at least making small talk.
“No, I work. I’m
a computer analyst.” I have no idea why I said that
because although I work with computers that’s not my job
description.
“Oh,” her
interest perked up.
“Yes, recruited
when I was sixteen,” God what was I saying? I’m trying
to impress a girl I never got on with... what’s wrong
with me?
“So, here having
a dirty weekend like...” She didn’t finish saying as mum
walked over.
“Oh my god
you’re dating an oldie?”
“No, no, no...
I’m...” I was lost for words but in some way I just
didn’t want to correct her. Part of me was hoping this
would get back to all my old school mates... and even
those who weren’t my mates.
“C’mon sweetie
momma needs her fix.”
“Yes, fine OK,
erm I’m needed so... by Trinny, hope you have a great
day.”
It all happened
so quickly and I just hope she didn’t detect the slight
rustle of my plastic pants or notice the bulge in my
shorts... and if she did, put it down to something
sexual.
I couldn’t wait
to tell mum what had just happened but then wondered if
she would be pleased at being called an oldie.
Perhaps better to remain quiet on the subject. However,
as we set off I had a huge self-satisfied smile on my
face.
And I thought
the day had already started well.
#
When we got to
the car I noticed mum also had a huge grin on her face.
“Well that was
fun.”
“Erm, what was?”
I asked innocently.
She looked at me
as if I wasn’t fooling anyone.
“You were trying
to impress that girl.”
“But, but...”
“I overheard
everything darling... she now thinks you are dating an
older, sophisticated lady... you wish.”
I sort of smiled
and grimaced at the same time because I’d been found
out.
“Was she a
friend?”
“No, I
recognised her from school but she didn’t like me - not
trendy or tough enough I guess.”
“And yet you
still....”
“Yes I know, I
know stupid...” I sighed, “she always treated me as a
nobody.”
“Oh, I’m sorry
sweetheart... you’re trendy and tough enough for momma.”
And she burst into gales of laughter, which made me feel
better. “Now then, the castle first, I think it opens in
about ten minutes and it’ll take us about twenty to get
there.”
We jumped in the
car and I felt the thick, soft padding hugging me as I
settled into the seat. This really was a brilliant way
to start the day.
#
The castle on a
sunny day was proving popular so mum said we’d only take
a quick look around after all. Despite the blurb in the
“Things to do...” section it didn’t have a lot to see or
do once you got there. So after a few posed photographs,
I clambered up a reinforced battlement and had to admit
that the view was quite spectacular.
There was
another soft click so knew mum was getting a few
more images to show to dad and Jenny.
On the way to
the castle mum had told me about the siege that had
taken place during the War of the Roses and I tried my
best to visualize the battle. I closed my eyes and
wondered what a battle would sound like; unfortunately
my imagination just wasn’t up to it. However, a couple
of young girls were screaming as they jumped from one
battlement to another and that seemed to create a
similar chaotic atmosphere.
As their excited
screams and laughter continued I stood looking out
feeling the strong cooling breeze wafting around my
unexpectedly trembling legs. It was at that moment I
felt my bladder give way and the amount of orange juice
I’d gulped down at breakfast make a hasty exit into my
disposable. I’d had no warning, although perhaps should
have expected it, but, like back in the office, I
couldn’t stop the flow. The stream seemed to take an
awful long time and was worried that the M4 just
wouldn’t cope with the amount but trusted the plastic
pants would do their job.
Mum was waiting
as I tentatively climbed down from my prominent position
and looked questioningly at me. There was another soft
click she caught the moment of my al fresco
embarrassment. She knew what she’d just taken a shot of
and smiled knowingly as I drew near.
“I guess it’s
time to find somewhere to change you.”
I nodded because
the soaked disposable had expanded quite significantly
so my shorts looked like I’d been storing an inflatable
cushion around my groin. I tried to walk as normal but
could tell I had a bit of a waddle, which felt strange
but not too uncomfortable.
Mum found a
disabled toilet and we popped in. Without much ceremony
I undid my shorts, slid the plastic pants down and mum
got to work yanking the sodden piece of material off. It
seemed massive.
My backpack had
all the items needed to make me clean and fresh for the
rest of the trip and mum wasted no time giving me a
quick wipe and then taping me in. The entire process
only took a couple of minutes but when we let ourselves
out who should be the first person I saw, Trinny.
She looked
shocked as she saw us both emerge and I hoped she
thought we were having a quickie. Alas, as I was still
hitching up my pants, she might well have heard me
thanking mum for the change but she hadn’t quite put the
disposable away and saw her stuffing things into my
backpack. A huge smile spread across Trinny’s face.
“Still wetting
your pants... you always were a little kid... thankfully
your mummy’s there to change you.”
She laughed and
then walked over to a lad who looked like he should be
playing rugby for Leeds Rhinos. Any comment or clever
response went unsaid and all I could think about was - a
guy my age wearing a nappy was good gossip for someone
like Trinny.
Unfortunately,
my fantasy of being seen as some kind of sexual stud had
lasted less than two hours.
However, despite
the total embarrassment, I was wearing a nice new dry
Abena... so it wasn’t all bad.
“Sorry
sweetheart,” Mum apologised.
I was flushed
but just shrugged, it wasn’t important.
“Not your fault
mum... and I doubt if I’ll see her again anytime soon.
Not that I want to see her anyway...”
She put her arm
around my shoulder and gave me a hug.
“Right, on to
Mansion Gardens I think and then perhaps we’ll have time
for the beach later this afternoon.”
We got in the
car and left. I had to admit that the ruins looked
pretty impressive from a distance but I was glad we were
leaving. However, Trinny’s words “Still
wetting your pants...you always were a little kid”
were giving me food for
thought.
#
As we drove I
was processing a few things.
Like, why did
thunder storms affect me so much and so easily, surely
this was something only a child would have problems
with? This most basic of question which I’d never been
able to find an answer to... but there was no denying
the soggy effect such meteorological events had on me.
From when I was
young and became aware of this climate phenomenon I was
always left peeing my pants. My parents of course were
very understanding and simply put it down to the event
stressing me out in some way. Trinny’s observation that
I was ‘still wetting my pants’ meant that I
hadn’t hid that fact very well when at school. This was
a surprise because in general, I never got any anguish
from wearing at school because I rarely wore padding and
didn’t think anyone knew. Shows how wrong I was.
There’s no doubt
that if thunder was forecast I got quite agitated but
mum had read that it might be better for me to confront,
rather than hide, from it. Although I’d not been
affected for some time, the recent bout of thunder and
lightning, especially the tree strike, had had an absurd
effect on my mental capacity to control my bladder – day
and night.
Another thing
running through my head: Had I accepted having to wear
nappies too easily?
I argued with
myself ‘No’, because wetting the bed and also
unwittingly peeing my pants in the office meant
protection was sensible. I’m eighteen so I should
be sensible.
And then there’d
be that other voice chipping in.
‘Yes but
you’re eighteen... so shouldn’t be wearing a nappy at
all.’
Allowing mum and
now my boss to change me... that can’t be right... so
why had I consented to the situation without a fight?
And that’s why
Trinny’s words had hit home “...you always were a
little kid.”
Is that what all
this is about - mentally I haven’t progressed from being
a scared three year-old terrorised in a tent in France?
Mum, and dad are
very loving and the one thing neither Jenny nor I were
short of was affection. They praised any of our
accomplishments no matter how small and encouraged us in
all our juvenile endeavours. When I had first got scared
of the storms and wet myself, it wasn’t made to be a big
problem. Something easily sorted with a quick wrapping
in a nappy.
I accepted it
then and I accept it now. They’d done it all my life –
if I had a problem when a storm (or any other stressful
incident) came then some form of protection was never
far away. I’d taken it as a practical solution so that’s
why I hadn’t hesitated now. I didn’t see it as babyish.
Nappies were a comfort and something I could rely on not
to let me down. It’s doing so now, whilst sitting in the
car on the way to the garden mum’s so keen to see.
#
The radio was
playing when a ‘Golden Oldie’ came on and mum looked at
me and enthused.
“This used to be
your favourite song when you were little. It always got
you up dancing and singing along... even though you
didn’t know the words.” She smiled and launched into the
chorus trying to encourage me to do the same.
As I wriggled in
my padded seat I felt comfortable and I looked over at
mum... the truth was being with her was giving me
immense pleasure. It took me back to when I was young
and often just the two of us would be doing things
together... I’d loved it then as I did now.
Here I am,
singing to a song that was a childhood favourite,
dressed in shorts, a t-shirt and wearing a nappy. So the
question has to be asked: Have I grown up at all?
My sister at
fourteen has happily moved from childhood to teenage
siren, taking care to show off her developing attributes
and enjoy the change. Whereas, I come home from work (ah
yes very adult), change out of my grown up workwear and
straight back into t-shirt and shorts and play computer
games that I’ve had since I was ten. I don’t like noisy,
gun-toting, battle things I prefer gentle games that
build or tease. I am just a big kid... and not that BIG
either.
The thing is...
apart from my wayward bladder... I like who I am. I
mean, even if I’m wet in bed I’m happy because I’m
padded and therefore safe and surely that’s a good thing
no matter at what age.
That’s the
trouble when I start to think... I don’t come up with
any answers or solutions to my problems... just more
questions.
#
We arrived at
Mansion Gardens and again were met by queues of people
out enjoying the sunny weather. However, the
receptionist had told mum that the gardens were looking
spectacular at the moment and it would be a shame to
miss them at their best... so we waited.
However, the
words of the song I’d been singing along to were still
bouncing around in my head, which unfortunately brought
Trinny’s words to the fore again only this time as part
of that damn song - “You always were a little kid.”
Dum di dum di dum...
I wasn’t sure
what she meant by that.
Did she mean I
always looked like a little kid because I was slightly
smaller than other boys?
Did I exude the
air of childishness with the way I behaved?
Did she know
that I sometimes wore padding to school, or that I
occasionally had small accidents in my undies?
Did she know
about my fear of thunder and lightning?
Or, was it
something else she’d detected that I didn’t know I was
doing?
What was it
about me that made her say those words – we weren’t
friends, she hardly knew me?
That was a lot
of pressure to worry about from a girl I didn’t care
about as I was never part of her social group.
#
A sensed a
slight tremble pass up my body as I couldn’t rid myself
of that stupid refrain and before long that
unmistakeable warming glow filled my M4. I sighed to
myself but didn’t want mum to worry about a change so
didn’t mention anything as we eventually paid the
entrance fee and slipped into the wonderful gardens. I
think it was the third glass of OJ making its presence
felt.
In point of
fact, apart from the disposable getting a bit stiffer I
didn’t feel any dampness and wandered happily with mum
as she gushed over the magnificent displays and
intoxicating fragrances. Actually, I’ve stolen those
last five words from the guide to the gardens mum was
referring to as we meandered around.
The expanded
disposable wasn’t in the least annoying so maybe it
would take another soaking before it needed a change. I
was aware of it gripping tightly under my shorts and if
I was being honest - it felt really quite nice. Much
better than the fabric ones I have to wear at home. I
understood mum’s argument about costs but this was more
than a treat and would have liked this Abena outing to
last for a while longer. Alas, when we go home tomorrow
I’ll be back in my usual terry cotton nappy until this
current episode of wetting goes away.
That got me
thinking. This has happened many times before, and my
parents have fixed it with either pull-ups or nappies
but usually I get over the nightly soakings and then
it’s back to tighty-whities, which I preferred to wear
for school and now work. Why had they decided that this
time it would be longer? I mean mum had bought quite a
supply of new nappies and even left some at work... so
why was it different this time?
Had they noticed
something about me that I hadn’t? Was I doing things
differently?
I thought about
asking mum but she was focused on the plant life so
probably didn’t want any of my on-going worries at that
moment. Besides, despite my distraction, when I did tune
back in, mum was explaining about how the gardens came
about, the plants from around the world and the
‘Festival of Colour’ they ran every year.
I’m sure she’ll
come away inspired to recreate some of this in our back
garden and liked the possibility of her running her own
‘Festival of Colour’ with the neighbours.
#
It was late
afternoon by the time we got back onto the beach for a
few rays. It was still very sunny and warm but the
crowds had thinned so we had more space to find the
correct place to lay our towels. Mum had decided not to
change into her swimsuit so was just wearing what she
had for the day but I’d gone back to the room, to get
out of my soaked disposable and wriggle into the
Speedos. I wasn’t sure if I’d go in the water but wanted
to be ready if I decided to.
Mum was looking
at her mobile and cheerfully told me that had we set off
home we’d have been caught in a ten mile snarl up on the
motorway. She was glad that we had this extra day here
and could take our time driving home tomorrow...
thankfully, without Mrs Symanski who was staying a month
with her sister.
It was nice to
have so much space so I stretched out as mum rubbed
suntan cream into my back.
“I’ve booked us
in for a meal at The Plough this evening... that nice
girl on reception said they do a very tasty crab ravioli
made with locally sourced crab,” she said smoothing in
the lotion.
“Mmmm that
feels... ermmm... sounds good.” I lazily corrected.
“Ohh there’s
that girl you know again. God her boyfriend is a bit of
a hunk isn’t he?”
“Mum.” I
rebuked.
“I’m only
saying. She might be a bitch but he’s quite a catch...
she’s...”
“She’s not
coming this way is she?” I nervously enquired without
raising my head. I didn’t want to be seen.
“No, she’s
walking down the beach towards the dunes... I
suppose...”she giggled.
“Muuummm, stop
it.” But I did rise on one elbow and watched her and
boyfriend disappear into the sandy slopes.
We both grinned
knowingly. What a terrible pair we were.
#
Whilst I relaxed
and drifted off mum phoned home to see how dad and Jenny
were coping without us. “Very well” was dad’s verdict
and said we should go away more often as the place was a
lot more peaceful. I’m sure there were a lot more
triviality’s that a husband and wife indulge in but I
was in a very nice drowsy state and enjoying the still
warm sun spreading its glow across my back.
In that strange
half-awake/half-asleep state I suddenly found myself on
the dunes with Trinny and her boyfriend. At first they
looked at me in disgust because I was only wearing a
nappy... a very fluffy, thick nappy the likes of which
I’d only ever seen the Fairy Liquid fairy wear.
Their anger at
being disturbed quickly changed to one of mock
friendliness and I was encouraged to join them. Of
course, I thought they were just being friendly so I
did. Trinny was stroking my chest and saying what a
sweet baby boy I turned out to be, whilst her tough but
handsome boyfriend was snuggling the back of my nappy
and rubbing himself up against it.
I wanted to
speak but she slipped my thumb between my lips and told
me to relax they’d take care of baby. There were kisses
on my back and neck from her boyfriend and she was
gently stroking the front of the thick fluffy nappy.
“Yes our little
baby is soooo cute isn’t he?”
It was a
rhetorical question as they both continued to paw me.
The thing was I quite enjoyed the attention.
“Maybe we should
adopt him and keep him nice and safe in his nappy.” She
continued saying stuff like this to her boyfriend who
was getting excited round the back. I could feel
something prodding and pushing past the fabric.
“Mmmmmmm”
was the hunks entire contribution to the conversation.
I was dumb but
excited as she began to unpin the nappy.
“Let’s get our
baby ready shall we... he might be wet and...”
At that moment I
could feel my bladder fail and I looked down and
embarrassingly saw my fluffy nappy turning yellow. Also
at the moment I actually woke up face down to feel mum
rubbing in more suntan lotion... and me peeing once
again into my Speedos.
“Are you awake
Anthony... you’ve been making quite the most disturbing
sounds?”
“Um, er, yes
just having a strange dream.”
“Well, that
explains it. Are you alright your body seems to have
flushed a bit red?”
I knew it wasn’t
something I could hide but at that moment I didn’t want
to reveal I’d wet and orgasmed in my little nylon
swimming trunks. If I turned over now mum would see my
shame. I could always rush to the sea and plunge in.
Yes... that seemed a great idea but thought I’d wait a
bit until mum was distracted and then I could saunter
down without her being suspicious.
After a few
minutes she was back Googling or reading something on
her phone so I discreetly got up and wandered down to
the water’s edge. It felt colder than last time but I
knew I had to submerge myself if I wanted to wash away
the damning evidence. I took a deep breath, there were
after all several younger kids splashing around not
bleating about how cold the water was. Anyway, with a
deep breath I plunged under and as the water rushed over
me, I rubbed at the front of my Speedos desperate to
remove any proof of my dreamy indiscretion.
I stayed
submerged for as long as my breath would hold and when I
resurfaced the sea didn’t appear as cold as I first
thought. I swam around for a bit enjoying the experience
and when I did finally decide to return to my pee-soaked
towel who should be walking up the beach but the
‘terrible two’ baby-snatchers. For some stupid reason I
was angry at them about what had happened in my
dream.
As she walked
past, they didn’t notice me at all. They were so into
each other I doubt that I or anyone else registered in
their little sex-filled world. As she passed by I saw
that she hadn’t pulled her bikini bottom up correctly
and flapping at the back like a beacon was a used
condom. I chuckled because others were noticing but I
wasn’t going to inform them... I mentally wished them
well.
#
Stupidly, when I
returned to my towel mum had of course noticed the huge
wet stain.
“Were you going
to tell me?”
I looked a
little ashamed. “It was the dream I was having.”
She put her arm
around my shoulder.
“Look love,
these accidents are happening more and more and there’s
not a thunder storm in sight, maybe it’s time we went to
see someone about it... hmmmm?”
I stood
shivering, though it wasn’t from the cold, so wrapped
the pee-soaked towel around my shoulders. I wondered who
we’d be seeing but she didn’t take it any further.
“OK, it’s
getting late so, why don’t we go back to the room, you
can have a nice long soak in the bath and then we can
get ready for our walk to The Plough. Does that sound
like a plan?”
I nodded, just
glad that she didn’t ask about my dream but I wondered
what the sounds were I’d been making that drew her
attention in the first place. She was also correct about
me wetting more... was it getting worse or was it just
that...?
A shiver ran
down my spine and not from the cold. Thankfully, I had
the towel to hide under as another spurt of pee rushed
into my little nylon Speedos. I think mum’s point had
been made.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 9
As we entered
the hotel mum collected a package from reception. The
same girl was there and she looked over and smiled.
Well, I wasn’t sure if it was a smile or a smirk but
then I remembered she’d seen the pack of Abenas as we
booked in, perhaps that was what she was reacting to.
What I didn’t discover until we got back to the room was
that mum had had the stuff I’d ruined on the journey
here cleaned and I was getting back freshly laundered
shorts and shirt. I wondered if mum had let slip to our
receptionist the reason for the need to be cleaned... or
she might simply have put two and two together to get an
answer.
“Thought you
might be fed up with wearing the same thing... and you
do look smart in these.”
She unwrapped
and hung them over the closet door. They’d even pressed
a crease down the short’s legs, which I thought a bit
unnecessary. I noticed mum hadn’t got my underpants
cleaned but could hardly blame her for that, it was
unlikely, as things stood, I’d be wearing them again
anytime soon.
However, in the
bathroom the hotel had left a small bottle of lavender
bath gel for our convenience. It was amusingly called
Sheep Dip Bubble Bath and assumed it was cheap stuff. So
I emptied the entire amount in, planning a fun bubble
encounter.
The efficient
bath quickly filled as did the mountain of bubbles the
gel had produced. I read the instructions and it did
have a little grading on the bottle to show how much
should be used per bath. There were five grades, for
five baths, and I’d used the lot in one go. This was
going to be extreme bubble-bathing but I’m eighteen, so
felt up to the challenge.
I stripped out
of my flimsy swimming trunks and threw them into the
sink, then gently dipped an exploratory toe in to test
the heat. It seemed perfect so I stepped in - such a
rookie mistake. The floor of the bath was still covered
in gel and I slid the full-length landing with a huge
splash on my back, banging my elbow and dispersing water
and suds everywhere.
“Owwww.” I
squealed as the pain shot up my arm. I felt stupid.
This was no
cheap bubble bath but top quality that the hotel
obviously prided itself on. The bathroom was covered in
what should have been in the tub but I was stunned by
the speed at which I’d ended up flat out in the bottom
of the bath. Also a handicap was my now throbbing elbow,
which made gripping difficult, and the bath’s
high-quality white gloss acrylic finish was so slippery
I was having trouble getting myself out again.
(Any sit-com
would have been proud of such a scene)
Mum came in to
see what the commotion was all about and looked, with
undisguised horror at the chaos I’d just caused. She
quickly picked up several towels and began the mop up,
whilst I still struggled to get myself sitting up in
what water remained.
I sat with
bubbles surrounding my body, in my hair and halfway up
the walls. I gripped my elbow trying not to be a big
baby because I’d knocked it but it did hurt. Mum was
busy trying her best to stem any water from escaping
from the tiled bathroom and into the carpeted sleeping
area... she was doing fantastic work. As I tried once
again to get out of the slippery bath, and failing, I
started, despite the injured elbow, to giggle at the
stupid situation I’d got myself in and saw a fantastic
grin split mum’s face.
“You’re bloody
hopeless at times.” She beamed. “I can’t trust you to
take a bath without making a mess.” Then she knelt down
beside the bath and grabbed a lovely thick flannel the
hotel also provided. “OK mister, arms up and because my
little soldier is wounded...” I was gripping my sore arm
so I doubt she could be more caring? “I’ll get you all
sparkling.”
We giggled like
two naughty kids.
So, I threw my
hands in the air and with all the love and consideration
she’d give to a new born, gave the most gentle rub down
possible. I think the amount of lavender fragrance in
the atmosphere made me relax more than usual and I
enjoyed something I’d not experienced for quite a number
of years. I felt pampered, loved and absolutely
wonderful... like the times when as a kid mummy kissed
everything better and gently bathed away the hurt of a
scuffed knee or bumped head.
#
Afterward she
finished I soaked in the bath for a little while and,
bless her, mum tidied around and mopped up the remaining
puddles. I don’t want you thinking mum often bathes me
because that isn’t the case. Having said that, she is in
charge of my nappy changes and, because over the years
she always has, when I needed protection she’s simply
got on with fixing it.
Of course I’ve
attempted to put a nappy on myself but the results have
been quite pathetic (although I can manage pull-ups with
flair) so if it’s fabric, and mum thinks they are better
for the environment, she, as I say just gets on with
it. I think she thinks that she knows what needs to
be done so there’s no point in hanging around discussing
it, or thinking about it... do it and then it’s done.
Mum is usually that practical, after all, that’s how I
ended up wearing nappies in the first place.
Just before I
got out of the bath I looked down and saw I was peeing.
A little pale yellow streak had flattened some of the
white bubbles. The thing was it didn’t feel like I was
responsible for it. My bladder was emptying without any
effort on my part. Although this had been happening now
since the previous weekend, this was the first time I’d
witnessed it and it scared me. I wasn’t responsible for
my own piss.
With some effort
I managed to escape the bath’s slippery clutches,
wrapped a dressing gown around me and made my way to
where the beds were. Mum was talking on her phone to dad
and I just wanted to flop down on the bed, which had the
disposable, plastic pants and associated cream and
powder laid out.
Rather than wait
to be told I simply shuffled onto the spread-out nappy
and taped it on myself. Mum watched as she continued to
talk to dad but stopped me finishing the job by
realigning my bum and pulling the tabs tighter for a
much better fit. She passed me the plastic pants which I
stepped into and then, once she saw I was safe from any
leakage, gave the phone and dad all her attention.
She appeared to
know that I could leak at any moment and not be aware I
was doing so. This was a precaution before I put on any
further clothes as it was a little early to get ready
for dinner. I lay out on the bed and switched on the TV,
there was some athletics on so I watched that. The
shiny, purple mound together with the soft cushion under
my bum was very reassuring and I felt safe that should I
leak again, all would be enclosed. It was comforting to
remember that over the years nappies had often come to
my rescue in similar ways. I felt sleepy, probably due
to the abundance of lavender I’d inhaled, and fell
asleep thinking how any incontinent athlete wearing such
tight lycra shorts would have trouble hiding their
padding.
#
Mum woke me up
with her hand down the front of my plastic pants
checking I was still dry.
“Still dry
sweetie.” She enthused. “Time to get ready, it’s still
quite nice out so we can just saunter along the cliff
top, through the woods and down to the restaurant in our
own time.”
I was surprised
I’d slept for so long but rather relieved I’d woken up
dry. I thought it proved I didn’t wet every time I
dozed. Then I remembered that actually, I’d been peeing
whilst wide awake so nothing should to be taken as proof
of anything.
I put on the
blue shorts and nicely pressed shirt and looked in the
mirror. I did look pretty good and there was only the
slightest bulge should anyone be looking. It’s amazing
how the shorts I wore seemed to hide the padding so much
better than trousers. Anyway, the weather was still fine
and warm and I felt quite sprightly as we set off along
the cliffs towards the restaurant.
“Did dad have
anything special to say?”
“I was chatting
about him about having a word with Doctor Ames and
making an appointment seeing as they’re in the same
office block.”
“Is everyone
OK?” I stupidly asked because I should have guessed it
was about me.
“I want you to
speak to a specialist.”
“You mean a
psychiatrist.”
“Yes, you saw
Laura back when you were seven...”
“Well she won’t
remember me from then.”
“Maybe, but we
know her and, more importantly, she knows you, so that’s
good.”
Dr Laura Ames
was a Child Psychologist when I first went to her. I
assumed she’d progressed over the years to be a proper
Clinical Psychologist since then if mum wanted me to see
her again.
“I think you’ve
got to agree that this time your spasmodic wetting,
especially when you’re unaware you’re doing so, is
different than when it’s happened in the past.”
It was a lovely
walk along the cliff in the opposite direction to where
we walked before. I wasn’t sure I wanted to talk about
seeing a doctor but we were doing that now so had no
option. Besides, mum was right it was getting more often
than I’d experienced with these events in the past.
Involuntary, I
rubbed the bulge under my shorts, the action made me
wonder if I was anxiously checking I still felt secure
even though the conversation was making me a little
nervous.
“You stopped
wetting just a couple of days after you saw her last
time,” mum continued, “but... as I’ve mentioned before,
your father and I think that the lightning strike you
witnessed has had an affected on a different level. We
need to get to the bottom of it sweetie... for your own
sake. I’m sure you don’t want to be wearing a nappy for
the rest of your life.”
Mum’s assessment
made me think and I felt that shiver run up my back with
the unfortunate result I spurted pee into my disposable
(and for no reason at all that taste of orange was in my
mouth). I couldn’t tell mum what had happened because
she hadn’t brought the nappy bag with her and there’d be
nowhere to change even if she had until we got to the
restaurant. Anyway, I could feel the little stream being
soaked up pretty efficiently by the special properties
of the disposable and just hoped that if it expanded a
lot my shorts could cope.
“When did he say
he’d speak with her?”
“First thing
tomorrow when he gets into work.”
“Oh well, I
suppose it’s for the best.”
“Let’s hope so
sweetheart,” and she patted my padded bottom in a
gesture that was friendly but also making a point.
#
Once mum had got
me on board with the doctor’s visit the subject changed
and we chatted a little easier about TV, books, Jenny’s
‘development’, dad’s work and a host of silly stuff
which continued throughout the meal. In the end mum did
have the receptionist recommended crab ravioli, whilst
I, being a free-thinker, indulged in The Plough
‘Special’ of scampi, chips, mushy peas and tartar sauce.
The food was excellent, cooked to perfection and well
worth the twenty-five minute walk to get there.
We did have a
moment when the waitress asked mum if I wanted the
child’s portion of scampi. I saw mum’s expression change
as she knew in the past I’d reacted badly to this type
of situation. The innocent waitress was still smiling
and looking from me to mum waiting for an answer. I
wriggled in my seat and actually heard the soft crinkle
of my plastic pants and decided I was in no position to
have a go.
“Mummy,” I said
in my most juvenile voice, “can I pwease have the big
boy scampi.”
The waitress’s
look changed to one of horror when she realised I was
not a child but taking the piss.
“Oh, I’m so
sorry... I... I... erm... can I get you any drinks
first...?”
“I’m sorry
love,” I apologised, “You aren’t the first person to
believe I’m a kid but I was just having fun. I didn’t
mean to make you feel uncomfortable.” Which of course
was precisely why I did say it.
“No, I’m sorry,
I shouldn’t assume...” She apologised as best she could.
“No harm done,”
I continued, “but if you want to add extra chips that
would be OK for me.”
“I’ll see what I
can do.” With smiles she took our order and brought our
drinks in double quick time.
Mum just looked
at me. “I think all that was a bit unnecessary,” she
scolded, “that poor girl.”
“I’m sure we can
make it up with the tip.”
Mum nodded and
we changed the subject to what we thought of Trinny and
her boyfriend. I didn’t mention exactly what I’d dreamt
about earlier whilst lying out in the sun. I think
that’s best kept to myself because it was both horny and
unsettling.
#
Although the
night was still young and the weather fine we decided to
get a taxi back to the hotel as we’d both eaten so much
we thought might not make the return trip along the
cliffs.
The driver was a
very nice Eastern European man who informed us that a
thunderstorm was coming. Mum looked at her phone and
checked the weather but it didn’t mention anything.
However, he was sure his prediction was correct because
he could ‘read the sky’ and tell the few tiny visible
clouds would soon to be joined by others.
As we sat in the
back of the cab I could feel my disposable filling up
and it was already sodden so I just hoped it would hold
until we got back to our room. We searched the sky to
see if we could determine if anything was approaching
but everything looked fine.
When we got back
to the room it was still early so mum said that after a
quick change she fancied sitting out in the garden with
a nice glass of wine; hoping to take in the final hours
of our trip together, whilst watching the ships out at
sea. This sounded wonderful so, she hurriedly whipped
off my shorts, plastic pants a very soggy disposable and
with equal speed (not that mum was desperate for a glass
of wine you understand) slipped me confidently into a
fresh nappy, found the thicker than usual pair of white
rubber pants and returned my shorts.
“I think you
should be safe if a storm does come... although... I
can’t see that happening myself.” She shrugged.
“Well,” I smiled
patting the thick slippery rubber, “these seem like they
could take on anything the weather wants to throw at us.
Have you been keeping these for a special occasion?”
“No, no, just in
amongst a few item I brought to be on the safe side...
and... should we have a storm... well you’re prepared
aren’t you?”
I smiled because
I felt well and truly gripped and... safe.
“OK, you ready
for a drink?”
“Come on...
let’s hope we can get a nice sea-view.” I slipped on my
hoodie as we headed down to the garden.
“I should think
so... most of the guest will have gone home today so I
suspect there will only be a few of us left.”
#
The sun was just
about set when we found a table and mum suggested we
share a bottle of sauvignon blanc but I preferred a
Tango. There were a couple of boats that we could see
going in opposite directions and we spent a bit of time
guessing where we thought their destination might be,
which then became where we’d like to go on holiday and
what we’d need if we were stranded on a desert island.
Mum wanted a hair drier and I wanted a knife.
Our desires for
the finer things eventually got ridiculous so changed
the criteria to which famous person we wanted to be
marooned with. This became a minefield of whether we
fancied someone or not... mum shouldn’t have had that
second glass of wine she was sharing too much.
It was all very
silly and the time just seemed to shoot by when we
decided to go to bed.
It was just
after 11.30 when mum kissed me night-night but I it was
still quite warm so I settled for sleeping on top of the
covers and wearing just a t-shirt and my thick padding.
It was 2am when
mum shook me awake and I was at the window watching the
storm pass over our hotel. Lightning flashed and the
thunder crashed around us but it was mum that woke me up
not the noise. According to her I’d been glued to the
window for about twenty minutes making little whimpering
noises and she suspected, filling my nappy.
I was soaked as
usual but didn’t remember watching the storm at all,
although now I could hear it as it trundled out to sea.
“Oh, mum, ermmm,
have I, um, been....”
I was a bit lost
for words because I wasn’t really aware of what was
going on except I could see the distant flashes and hear
far off rumbling.
Mum saw my
confusion.
“Like last time,
I woke up to see you at the window watching but
definitely not aware of where you were. You seemed
transfixed and I could tell, even in the dark, you were
wetting your nappy.”
She patted the
soggy material.
“Mmmm very wet
sweetheart... I think you’ve wet a few times but those
rubber pants have prevented any leaks like I hoped they
would.”
“Did you know?”
“No love, it was
just that, well, after the taxi driver seemed so sure I
thought it best to be on the safe side. Just as well
really huh?”
“So, you’ve been
watching what I did... and... did I do anything
strange?” I was a bit perplexed but wondered what I’d
been up to.
“When I woke up
you were already at the window. You were sucking your
thumb,” she shrugged as if she had no idea why, nor did
I, “and making a strange little crying noise.”
“How did you
know I was peeing?”
“I can tell
sweetheart. I’m your mum and there’s very little I don’t
recognise from odd grimaces to happy giggles to strained
grunts... I know each of my kid’s little ways.”
I looked back
out the window to the horizon but the sky was mostly
stars... it did look pretty but the sea had blended with
the sky to be only blackness.
“Well, I suppose
I better get back into bed.” I yawned.
“Do you want me
to change you first?” Mum was patting the soggy bulk.
“I think it
might be for the best... do we still have any left?”
“Just a couple
and you’ll need one for tomorrow but... well... let’s
get you out of this.”
She went to the
closet and pulled out the now much smaller Abena
package, dug out a dry one and gave it a shake to give
it some volume.
“Actually, there
are... three... four left... do you want to double for
tonight?”
“No thanks I
should be OK... but,” I said running my hand over the
slippery surface, “these rubber pants seemed to work
pretty well so I better have them again if they aren’t
too damp.”
“Well, I’d
rather give them a rinse through and have them available
for tomorrow just in case we get caught in traffic. I’d
prefer to put you in one of the other pairs...”
I yawned again
and let mum get on with it and thankfully I was clean
and in a fresh nappy in just a few minutes. She’d also
found a pair of see-thru plastic pants to hold it all
in, so now there was a definite crinkle when I moved.
“There, let’s
hope that’ll hold until morning. Night-night love, hope
you sleep well.”
“Night mum,
sorry for waking you.” She kissed my forehead and we
both returned to our beds.
“No worries
sweetheart but let’s try and get you sorted hmmm?”
I lay there
wondering how that could happen. How I appeared not to
know what I was doing when a storm came. The fact that I
was wetting all the time and have little or no control
over it was more than frustrating. However, I was calmed
as I settled under the covers, heard the confidence
building crinkle and felt thankful that the bulk of my
nappy would keep me from any huge catastrophe. Abena M4s
were really very comfy to sleep in.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 10
Checking out
time was 11.00 and after a very nice cooked breakfast we
were on our way home by 10.45. Of course I’d woken up
absolutely saturated so after a ‘shit and shower’ mum
slipped me into a fresh disposable plus those very
‘robust’ rubber pants and I was ready for whatever the
day threw at us.
“We can take our
time getting home and there’s that new Outlet Shopping
Centre on the way so... how about us trying to find you
some trousers for work?” Mum enthused but I also suspect
she fancied the idea of a bit of retail therapy for
herself.
“Sounds ok,” I
wasn’t as keen but, as this summery weather wouldn’t
last for ever, saw it as probably a good idea to try and
find something other than shorts to cover my padding.
Despite it being
well past rush hour the roads were quite busy, I suppose
Monday mornings always are but it just surprised me a
little. I think, not being a driver (never felt the need
to learn) I just noticed the traffic more. Anyway, by
noon we were pulling into a parking space in the ‘green’
parking section of the Centre which also looked busy. My
heart sank a bit because it was a much larger structure
than I’d envisaged and was hoping we’d be in and out in
minutes. It didn’t look as if that was going to happen.
As we walked in
one of the many entrances it proudly proclaimed ‘over
100 outlets, 6 screen cinema, 20 restaurants, children’s
play area, etc, etc.’ this was definitely not my
favourite way of spending a day off. However, mum wanted
to see the lot and I just knew her credit card, and
quite possibly mine, were going to get a bashing today
and she was very eager to get started.
#
Three hours
later we trundled back to the car laden with bags of
stuff. I think mum had dragged us into just about every
shop and had bought stuff for Jenny and dad as well as
me and herself. I hated having to try things on but
realised, because of padding, it was no doubt better for
me to at least see if they fit before buying anything. I
hated queuing for the changing rooms, especially when
mum insisted I come out and display how it all looked.
She’d pat, grab
and smooth items down as I uneasily paraded in front of
her and she’d give me her opinion. Occasionally, other
customers might be looking on and no doubt a few noticed
I had some sort of padding. No one said anything but
there were a few strange looks. Strangely enough, a lady
around Mrs Symanski age, and oddly sounding like her,
expressed her opinion that I was ‘a well-behaved and
lovely little lad’. Mum smiled and nodded at the old
lady but didn’t put her right. I was too gobsmacked to
respond.
I tried on what
felt like several hundred pairs of trousers in several
different stores before she gave me the thumbs up. So, I
bought two pairs, one in black the other in dark green.
However, I did indulge myself because one of the Outdoor
retailers dealing with walking, camping and promoting a
healthy explorer lifestyle was having a sale and
I bought a couple of very hardwearing camping shorts to
add to my collection. They looked particularly sturdy
with pockets and zips everywhere. I was quite pleased
that I’d found a bargain and therefore it justified this
horrendous shopping trip.
Then of course
with my purchases done I had to wait whilst mum tried
things on and that seemed to take forever. She seemed to
know dad’s taste and style so would just grab clothes
for him without a second thought but was more meticulous
in what she found for Jenny.
Our last stop
was a huge pharmacy though we didn’t spend too much time
searching for stuff. It appeared mum had pre-ordered for
us to collect (no wonder she spent so much time looking
at her phone) and I only wished she’d done that with
everything. Anyway, there were two extra-large packages
for me to carry back to the car.
The boot was
crammed to capacity so thank god we didn’t actually have
Mrs Symanski because together, her and her suitcase
would have made it impossible to fit everything in.
“So,
what have you been buying?” I enquired as I squeezed the
last package in as best I could.
“You said you
liked the Abena disposables you’re wearing so I thought,
as they’re cheaper here than anywhere else I’ve checked,
we’d get a few in for emergencies.” She said
matter-of-factly.
I just nodded
but was really quite pleased and then for the first time
since we’d arrived at this Retail Plaza wondered if I
was still dry. I wasn’t, I was soaked through but the
thick rubber pants had held me so tightly I wasn’t aware
that the M4 had expanded.
“Mum, I’m wet.”
“Do you want to
go back in and change in the washroom?”
“Actually, no, I
think that’s enough of that place for the time being.
Let’s get home and I’ll make do until then... I’m sure
it will all hold.”
“If you’re
sure... it’ll take us an hour, an hour and a quarter.”
Mum shrugged and we set off.
Mum turned on
Radio 5 to hear their discussion on current topics and I
began to wonder just why mum was stocking up on more
padding. There was something else mum had observed that
I now began to zero in on. It was
something I thought quite odd - why was I sucking my
thumb and crying when a storm came? Then another bizarre
thought struck me – why did I keep ‘tasting’ the orange
chocolate crème?
Even though me
and mum had a fantastic time over the last couple of
days and discussed quite a lot, there were areas of my
old problem that I was still quite vague about. I assume
that’s why she wanted me to see Doctor Ames again, to
get to the bottom of it. That journey home certainly
gave me a lot to think about.
#
As we unloaded
the boot mum split the packages and told me which to
take up to my room... that included the two big packs
from the pharmacy. Jenny met us at the door, she was
still wearing her school uniform so might have just got
in herself and thanked mum when handed a couple of bags
from trendy stores.
She said that
dad planned to be home for 6.30 and had already started
preparing a meal for us all. That’s Jenny, never one to
let the grass grow under her feet, she simply sees what
needs to be done and gets on with it... much like mum.
By now my wet
nappy was uncomfortable so wanted out of it as soon as I
could. I rushed up to my room, laden with my purchases,
and threw them on the bed thinking to sort them out
later. Of course, either Jenny or dad had been keeping
up with the washing and there already was a stack of
clean fabric nappies piled up on the top of the chest of
drawers... a smaller pile of coloured plastic pants were
shoved on top of them. I hadn’t realised I’d needed so
many changes before our weekend away. Thank heaven for
the M4s and we weren’t bringing back any soiled
nappies... I know I’d have used quite a few.
The wardrobe had
mirrored sliding doors and I caught sight of myself and
thought the blue shorts were not hiding my expanded
padding at all well. I unzipped and let them fall to the
floor revealing the shiny rubber pants that had swollen
considerably so I must have wet more than once on the
way home. However, I had to admire their glossy
sturdiness because they did look pretty effective and
quite racy.
Racy, erotic,
stimulating? I don’t think I’d ever thought of nappy
covers in that way before. I’d always been grateful to
them for stopping any leaks and bolstering my confidence
but perceiving them in this way made me stop and wonder
– what am I thinking? There was suddenly a throbbing
extra bulge under the soggy disposable that needed
consideration.
Too late, mum
came in at that point and said how cute I looked. It was
the type of thing she often said after I’d been changed.
I think, over the years, this was partly so I didn’t get
a complex about having to wear protection and it had
just become second nature. I’m not sure she meant a
great deal by it.
“I have to say,”
she said sliding her hands over the glassy rubber
surface, “these do look a lot more durable than the
plastic pants I bought in the sale. I’m glad I’ve
invested in a couple more pairs for you.”
I thought about
asking her ‘why’ but that would be silly as she would
simply point out the super-soaked disposable I was
wearing and know without asking that I had no idea I’d
wet so often. I needed as much protection as I could
get... well at least until I’d seen the doctor.
“Sweetheart,
let’s get you out of this wet disposable and into a nice
dry fabric nappy... oh... do you want some time on your
own?” She asked seeing the small but unmistakable bulge,
“I can come back later.”
Although I was
embarrassed mum had seen it I can’t say it was the first
time. Mum had been changing my nappies when needed
throughout my eighteen years and she’d seen me in just
about every state possible. My little dick wasn’t going
to embarrass her and I desperately did want to just
ignore it as I’d prefer to be into something dry.”
#
There was a
large bath towel folded at the bottom of my bed which I
spread out. Mum was checking the pile of clean nappies
and deciding which to use, whilst at the same time
grabbing pins and lotion she’d need. I pulled a box of
wet wipes from the bed side table and then slowly
dragged down the thick rubber pants. The disposable was
in a terrible state, I’d worn it to such an extent that
it had become crumpled and saggy making me look like I
had a deformed extended crotch. Not a good sight.
By the time we’d
pulled all the items together and I was laid out on the
towel naked from the waist down, my awkward demanding
dick had returned to its usual mouse-like state and mum
could get on with the clean-up.
It felt strange
to be back in a fabric nappy but it was welcome as mum
shuffled a pair of see-thru plastic pants that had a
loud crinkle when slipped into place.
“These are
noisy.” I said running my hands over the glassy
material.
“Are they, I
hadn’t noticed,” she had a thought. “Maybe because the
rubber pants were noiseless these appear noisy... just a
thought.”
Mum might be
right.
Anyway, she
helped me up and as per usual patted the back of my
slippery padding as I made my way over the chest of
drawers to get a pair of shorts. I had a quick search
and settled on a pair of pale blue Adidas but before I
could clamber into them mum turned me round to face her.
“Thanks for this
weekend Anthony... I really enjoyed spending this much
time together.” She had a lovely grateful look on her
face.
“Same here
mum... it was great fun... if a little bit wetter than
I’d hoped.”
Mum’s face
changed to one of concern.
“Has any of
that worried you too much?”
“Not really,
it’s just, well, I know I need all this padding and when
I’m wearing it I’m very grateful because I know it will
stop any embarrassing displays on my part. I just wish,
well, that I was over all this by now.”
“I know love...
I’ve always been grateful myself that you’ve never let
it get you down. But you know we are worried that
witnessing that strike might have set you back but...
you’ve coped with it remarkably well. However, kneeling
up at the window and not being aware as you fill your
nappies... is a departure from the norm so that’s why we
want you to see Laura...erm... Doctor Ames.”
“I understand
mum and I’m with you 100%... it would be nice to get to
the bottom of all this. In the meantime,” I said opening
up the shopping bags and taking out my new trousers. “I
can hide the incriminating evidence under these for the
near future anyway.”
I opened the
wardrobe and hung everything up.
Mum beamed her
support. “OK, let’s see what Jenny and your father have
been up to.”
#
Dad had said
he’d managed to get an appointment with Doctor Ames at
3.30 Friday afternoon and would that be convenient. I
told him that I’d check when I got in to work but
usually Mrs Dewhurst was OK with doctor’s appointments
although that it also depended on how busy we were. The
upshot was, Friday was OK and I could leave work early -
no problem.
In fact, the
following week was as nice as last week weather-wise but
thankfully, our area of the UK had no thunderstorms.
However, I was still wearing nappies to work and wetting
them all the time but only had Mrs Dewhurst change me a
couple of times. She seemed happy to do it, I think she
missed doing it for some reason... perhaps her daughter
had got control back and I’d become a sort of
substitute.
She seemed
really happy to see me back and I’d only had the one
extra day off. I think she was more keen than I was to
get me into a dry nappy and I was quite amazed at how
organised she was. Despite that, she took her time and
made each element of the operation just perfect; making
sure the wet wipes weren’t too wet, the anti-rash cream
was enough and not too much talcum powder. She arranged
the nappy ‘just so’ and made sure I was comfortable and
that it hugged me correctly before finally pinning me
in. To be honest, it was a bit more attention than I
expected or wanted but she did it with such affection it
wasn’t something I felt able to complain about.
It became easier
because Mrs Dewhurst was spearheading a new project for
which Phil in our office was writing the programme,
whilst I, and Debby in the London office, were doing the
online tactical and response work; finding any gremlins,
faults, offering feed-back and other uses for the
finished programme. Mrs Dewhurst was coordinating
firewalls and the security element and looking to other
areas of the company where her latest creation would be
of benefit. It meant that we spent quite a bit of time
working together both in her office and out in the main
area.
With the summer
days still being pretty hot I was wearing my new
‘Outlet’ inspired purchase of lightweight but weather
protective shorts I’d bought from the outdoor store. It
said they were not only 100% nylon but had a
water-repellent coating of the fabric, which they
proudly proclaimed - allows the wearer to avoid the
effects of rain during outdoor events. I thought
that fact might come in handy if I had a bit of an
accident. However, they hid my padding exceptionally
well and, whilst sat at my desk in the layers of
padding, I felt very confident that, even with crinkly
plastic pants underneath, my secret was safe.
As usual I was
enjoying my work and constantly glad, despite the wet
nappy, that I’d managed to get myself a job where I was
excited every day to be there. I was a very lucky boy.
#
At 3.20 Friday
afternoon I was in the waiting room at the
psychiatrist’s office. Mrs Dewhurst had been insistent
that I not miss a doctor’s appointment and had let me go
at 3.00. She wanted to know if I needed a change before
I went and I did... so I arrived fresh and dry.
Dr Laura Ames
and a group of other medical and psychological
practitioners had the entire ground floor of the block
where dad worked. He was on the top level, Level 9,
where the company he worked for had that entire floor as
well. Dad played golf with Dr Ames’s husband and they
had been to our house for a meal on occasions.
Other than the
last time I visited her when I was seven, medically,
I’ve had nothing to do with her or her husband who is
also a doctor. Socially, we’ve seen each other around
but other than that.... not a lot.
I was a little
nervous; after all it had been some time since I was
last her patient. As I sat waiting I felt that slight,
nervy shiver run through my body and realised I’d wet my
fresh nappy. Thank heaven Mrs Dewhurst had changed me
otherwise I might have leaked had I kept the previous
one on... and then what would the good doctor think if I
dribbled all over her office?
The thing I
didn’t know until later was that she knew all about my
problem because my parents had kept her up to date over
the years... at a social level. So when she eventually
asked me to sit down in her office I thought we’d be
starting from scratch... we didn’t.
“Nicer office
than last time we talked.” She was smiling encouragingly
obviously aware that I was more than little
apprehensive.
Her room was
nice and tastefully decorated with nothing too
outlandish or that cried out ‘Head Doctor - Run Away’.
Mmmm, and a nod
was all I could add in agreement to her opening gambit?
Although,
surprisingly, now I was with her, I did remember quite
well, the room when I was seven. It was a pokey little
room with loads of cartoon characters and toys scattered
around. It was part of the Children’s Hospital and there
were colourful walls which had a huge mural of rainbows
and baby animals painted across two of its surfaces.
Still I was here
now and I’m not a kid anymore so didn’t need toys to get
me to chat. Well I hoped not anyway. I smiled to myself
as I thought about it and she caught the emotion.
“Well Anthony...
your parents have told me some of what’s happened but
I’d like to hear it from you... if that’s OK?”
She was quite
direct. I thought I’d have to go through my history but
she seemed to want to start from where I was now.
“Erm.” I was a
bit stunned as to where to start. “What have mum and dad
said?”
She reeled back
a bit on the probing, noting that I was taken aback by
the sudden launch into my ‘old problem’.
“Before we get
into what they said... how about you tell me about
this.” She pointed directly at the bulge under my
shorts.
“Oh, that... you
can tell... erm... I wet myself and I don’t know I’m
doing it.”
She let that
statement hang for a few seconds and then followed up in
a very quiet voice.
“Does that worry
you?” Her enquiry was gentle and interested and didn’t
seem in the least bit invasive.
Although, this
wasn’t what I was expecting at least she didn’t ask “And
how does that make you feel?” Well, I suppose she did
but at least it sounded like a friendly question rather
than a psychoanalytical one.
However, she was
a woman in a position of authority and had asked a
question so had to answer honestly.
“No.”
She raised her
eyebrows and smiled.
“Thank you for
being honest... let’s see if we can continue that way
shall we?”
I didn’t see I
had any alternative. She already knew all about me
thanks to mum and dad, and, I’ve never seen the point in
lying... that’s also thanks to mum and dad (remember the
one spanking I’d ever received?).
“Sure, what do
you want to know?”
Even as I said
these words another shiver ran through my body and this
time I felt a stream of pee gush into my rapidly soaking
material. I just hoped the see-thru plastic pants would
be sufficient.
I tried not to
be scared but was worried what the clever Dr Laura Ames
might notice.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 11
Dr Laura Ames
continued like we’d known each other for ever. She was
friendly but strangely I still felt like the nervous
seven year-old I’d been the last time I saw her. We
talked briefly about that time and what I’d been doing
but of course she mainly wanted to know how many times
I’d been affected by thunder storms since that session.
Too many to list
was the true answer.
Her manner was
very relaxed and only asked questions for clarification.
When I looked back I found myself surprised at just how
often mum had put me back into nappies when I started
wetting the bed again. I also mentioned that at sixteen,
when I’d got a job, I had the need for some extra night
time protection “...but only for a few anxious weeks” I
was at pains to explain.
For some reason
I thought this was not connected to the other times and
spoke at length to make sure she realised that.
The conversation
went on and the time simply flew by but I became
conscious that my nappy kept soaking up more and more as
I dribbled into it throughout the session. It was more
like I was an incontinent three year-old rather than a
seven... er... I mean an eighteen year-old.
She asked me
about the last thunder storm I was affected by at the
weekend and as it was still fairly clear I was able to
relate what mum had told me about sitting transfixed at
the window and watching its progress.
“Mum said I just
looked out on the horizon and, although my eyes were
open, I seemed oblivious of anything around me.
“Do you only
remember what your mother told you?”
“Yes, I didn’t
know what I’d done until I woke up and saw mum had put
me in extra padding because she said I’d soaked what I
usually wear at night.”
“Usually at
night?”
“Hmmm, yes,
well, erm, since the, ummm, I started wetting again
mum’s put me back into nappies at night but, more
recently, I’ve had to wear them all the time as I leak.”
“OK, that’s
interesting... well, we’ll come back to that... anything
else?”
“She did say I
was making little crying noises and sucking my thumb.”
“Do you normally
suck your thumb when a storm comes?”
“Well,
apparently, the last couple of times mum’s seen me I
have... but I can’t say I’ve never done it
before, I just don’t have any recollection of doing
so... apart from when I was three.”
I guiltily
laughed at the memory of sucking my thumb that very
first time because mum didn’t have a dummy as she
comforted me throughout the storm.”
“Do you remember
if you did it or did your mother encourage you...?”
“No, I was
three, I just remember being scared of the thunder and
everything else I’ve just assumed or what I think mum’s
said rather than what I remember. So, I don’t know... I
just think my thumb soothed my panic. Oh!”
For the first
time I’d made a link and one that the doctor had
expertly led me to... I was still behaving like a
frightened little three year old.
“And when you
were three who saw to your wet pyjamas?”
“Mum.” I
answered ruefully.
“Did mum make it
better?” She said softly looking into my eyes which were
welling up.
“Yes, she
cleaned me up and held me throughout all the terrifying
noise until I fell asleep.”
“Do you think
that’s what’s happening now...?”
“I, I don’t
know. I mean, I’m eighteen I shouldn’t need...”
“Should or
shouldn’t doesn’t come into it...”
“But,” I said
positively, “there have been other storms around and
I’ve not needed, er, wanted, erm, um... thought about
that.”
We paused a
moment as I thought about the situation and I could feel
my soggy nappy getting cool and not nice to wear.
“OK, so why do
you think you now have a thumb in your mouth?”
I pulled my
thumb away in horror but a string of drool was still
attached. I hadn’t even realised what I was doing. I
felt like a silly little kid but she didn’t appear
worried so moved on. I recognised that orangey taste
again but didn’t know why.
“Perhaps the
lightning strike you witnessed has in some way made you
recall what took place when you were three and that
first experience of a scary storm.”
“But why would
that happen? I mean, I work, I function, I’m an
adult...”
“But still
you’re wetting yourself and don’t know you’re doing
so...”
She rested a
hand on my arm to let me know she understood.
“There’s no
reason why you can’t function as normal except that, as
happened in the past, your brain currently isn’t sending
any adult messages to control your bladder.”
This didn’t seem
new news but hearing her say it out loud made it appear
more definite and true. But why?
#
“But why?” I
cried and could feel my eyes filling up.
“That’s what we
need to find out.” She looked at her watch, “But that
will have to be another session as we’ve run out of
time. Make another appointment at your convenience with
the receptionist. Meanwhile, are you wet now?”
Laden with guilt
and shame I nodded.
“We have
disposables if you would like to change in the
bathroom.”
I was
embarrassed and tearful, which was silly after all that
we’d been talking about but the nappy was very
uncomfortable.
She led me to
the rather large private bathroom at the side of her
office and, I don’t know where it came from, gave me a
Tena pull-up.
“Do you think
that will do until you get home?”
I nodded and
besides, I had plastic pants so that should stop any
leakage.
I pulled down my
shorts and saw the bloated nappy under its glass-like
cover. It seemed to take me ages to wrestle with the
pins before I was able to release the heavy saturated
bundle from my crotch. I threw it in the sink and pulled
some paper towels from the holder and wiped myself dry.
I looked in the mirror at my dark sobbing eyes and
thought I still looked more like a badly aged three year
old than my real age.
Once clean it
took me a little while to get round to pulling the
pull-up up. Laura Ames asked if I was OK or did I need
some help. At that moment I was a little shaky and
uncoordinated so would have loved some help and for a
grown-up to take charge. It was then I realised what all
this was about. It had taken speaking to a psychiatrist
for me to see things, obvious things, a little clearer.
I slipped the
plastic cover over the Tena and pulled up my shorts,
splashed my face with cold water and thanked the doctor
as I headed home, wet nappy in my backpack. However,
there was another realisation lurking at the back of my
mind and I wanted to sort that out before I saw the
doctor again.
#
All the way home
on the bus I kept thinking how all this wetting was
obvious. The storms somehow make me regress to that very
first time. But is that true? I mean, it may happen now
but over the years there have been many storms and I’ve
not resorted to sucking my thumb or mewling like a
baby... haven’t I?
I know I’ve not
told mum or dad every time I’d had an accident in my
pants because it wasn’t always that obvious. So there
were times when I kept quiet and simply slid the
offending stained undies into the laundry. What I
couldn’t pretend didn’t happen was the fact that I still
had mum change me once I’m wet. It had never really
occurred to me until the doctor pointed it out. I needed
my mummy like I had when three years old... and
over the years, that hadn’t changed.
I examined
myself on the bus and did a quick inventory; lack of
stature and body hair, small penis, prefer shorts and
still wearing a nappy. Yep, that sounds like a little
kid. I hadn’t developed since I was a small boy, I still
am a small boy... then how the hell did I get a job?
That’s the difficult thing to rationalise... or was
there no connection... they were two different parts of
my character?
I mean, would I
have gone for it without the encouragement of my sister?
Doh,
probably not.
When I thought
about it, even though I’m the older brother, I’ve always
acceded to Jenny. She’s always been my best playmate,
best friend and apart from mum and dad, the one person
of whom I still take most notice.
I mean, my job
has a woman in charge and that woman is now changing me
when I wet. I didn’t know exactly what mum and Mrs
Dewhurst talked about, all I know was that it ended up
with her agreeing to change me if I wet in the office.
How easily I’d slipped into that comfort zone but then
why had she so easily agreed to it... surely we can’t
all have some kind of ‘mummy complex’? Oh, this was
annoying. The more I thought about it the more stupid
and unreal the situation seemed and yet... here I was.
#
The journey home
wasn’t long enough for me to sort my ‘old problem’ out
but the more I thought about it the more I realised just
how long I’d relied on nappies to help me over those
periods of anxiety, which is what I put my incontinence
down to.
Once back I
called out a “Hello” to anyone who was around but I only
got a muted response from Jenny who was on the phone to
her friends. Mum and dad weren’t home yet so made my way
to my bedroom and stripped down to my Tena, which I
could tell under the glassy cover was still dry. This
was something I couldn’t explain as I’d been pissing
myself almost nonstop in the doctor’s office.
Of course I’m
used to seeing myself dressed in such a way but I was
trying to get angry about it, or at least find some
negativity but I couldn’t... under the present
conditions, this was what I needed. I began to think
that perhaps I should wear jeans or jogging bottoms to
cover it up but I’ve never found them as comfortable as
an old pair of shorts. So I grabbed another pair from my
Adidas collection and although they bulged out a little
I thought looked fine. At home I’d never been
embarrassed by being well-padded or that anyone might
notice.
Jenny was still
on the phone, had the TV on low volume but was still
watching some programme or other. I wandered into the
kitchen and saw that she’d already started getting the
meal ready. I was carrying my soaked nappy that I’d
changed in the doctor’s office so shoved it in with the
rest of my ‘to be washed’ pile next to the machine. I
grabbed a Coke from the fridge and returned to the
living room to watch a bit of TV with my sister.
However, she’d finished on the phone and watched as I
sat down but she was quickly in.
“How did it go
with Laura?” First name terms, perhaps more had gone on
between our families than I realised.
“She was OK I
guess, got me thinking but...”
“Wasn’t that the
idea?”
“Yes, but I
don’t think I’m cured.”
I could see her
eyes flick down to my padding which had crept down the
leg of the shorts.
“No I can see
that but surely you didn’t expect to be so... ahhh,” She
saw the smile on my face, “you’re having fun at my
expense.”
“Yes I am,” I
grinned but then got serious. “Can I tell you
something...?”
She smoothed
down her dress and her boobs seemed to push themselves
forward as if I should be addressing them.
“Erm, as we
talked about it... I just couldn’t stop peeing into the
Tena. I mean, I had absolutely no control. So, by the
end I was saturated.”
“So you’re
saying that even talking about it sets you off?”
“Yes but, and
get this, I changed at the office to a pull-up...”
“Did Laura
change you?” She added with a bit of devilment.
“Good God no
I... oh.... so you’re getting your own back and having a
laugh at my expense.”
“Got it in
one... see bro there’s nothing wrong with your sense of
humour.”
“I never thought
there was.”
“Well why then
are you looking so fed up? Mrs Woodward my teacher says
‘If you’ve got a sense of humour, you’ve got the answer
to any problem’.”
This was the
first time I thought my sister sounded her age.
Repeating a pleasantry her teacher had probably said in
a throwaway moment in class – humour wouldn’t solve this
wetting problem.
She wasn’t done.
“You’ve had this problem all your life and I’ve never
once seen it get you down or all that worried and yet
you are now.... why?”
She made a good
point but the thing was if I didn’t know when I was
pissing myself, it was obviously getting worse.
“Because I think
I’ve lost all control and, although a nappy copes
with the outcome, it doesn’t bode well for my future if
I’m still reliant on one for the rest of my life. I need
to get back control. I mean, I’ve had it after storms in
the past but now...”
My voice tailed
off as she came up and put her arm around my shoulder.
“You’re my big
brother so no matter what... I’ll still love you.” She
then kissed the top of my head like mum would do and I
was grateful for her kind words. However, I suddenly
realised that my Tena was now soaked and I could see the
expanded fabric pushing out the glassy see-thru plastic
pants under my shorts.
“I just need to
get back control.” I whispered forlornly more to myself
than Jenny.
#
Back in my
bedroom I didn’t change just waited for mum to come
home. Off course, when we set off to the coast with Mrs
Symanski I was convinced I could control my bladder and
wouldn’t need any protection. Mum, on the other hand,
came prepared and knew what I needed even if I didn’t.
Thankfully, I liked the M4s and it turned out just as
well because my constant leaking cock definitely needed
heavy protection if I wasn’t to embarrass myself
further. Mrs Symanski knowing my old problem wasn’t yet
cured was more than anyone needed because I knew she’d
make that into one of her long-winded anecdotes.
Mum and I had
touched on this control issue whilst away, but I was at
ease with how things panned out. I let things go, and so
did mum, because it was just that... easy. We were
enjoying the weather, the seaside and each other’s
company so we concentrated on that.
As I’ve said
before, mum and dad never made my ‘problem’ an issue, it
was the way I was and it could be solved quickly and
without ceremony or fuss by the addition of night time
protection. Once that was in place, to all intents and
purposes, the problem was resolved. Except, I’d now hit
a different level, a more advanced level, so that
conundrum needed to be sorted before it became something
I couldn’t influence.
I don’t like
thinking about me, it seems quite an indulgence and it’s
something I’ve rarely done. I tend to just go along with
things believing that others know best, or certainly
better than I do. Teachers never got a squeak out of me
and nor has Mrs Dewhurst except there I’m part of a team
and I have put forward my ideas and been encouraged to
develop them... so perhaps I’m not so reticent after
all. However, that is definitely a new development on my
part though doubt if they are in any way connected.
Another thing
I’m a little confused by (and as you can see there are a
few ‘things’) is why mum bought all those disposable
Abenas. I mean, she’d been dead against disposables for
a long time and yet she’s stocked up on some because
(she says) I said I liked them. Why then send me to a
psychiatrist to help me over it all... and still have a
huge supply of the things?
I suddenly
thought that mum didn’t believe I could change, that I
was too nerdy or fragile and I’d always need nappies. I
got myself into a state believing my parents had all but
given up on me and became quite annoyed and fraught.
All these
different thoughts were spinning around in my head and I
felt quite sick and unbalanced by the whole thing. I
wished it would all go away but wishing wasn’t going to
help. I ran my hand over the squishy fabric and
experienced two sensations at the same time – disgust
and comfort.
#
Doctor Ames had
certainly made me address several things and I didn’t
like it at all.
I was sat on my
bed when mum came in.
“Anthony I...
what on earth’s the matter sweetheart?” She immediately
saw I was perturbed and in need of some reassurance.
“Why, why, did
you buy all those disposables... don’t you think I can
get control back?”
“Oh sweetie. I’m
sorry if it seems that way but haven’t I always said
‘Hope for the best but prepare for the worst’?
I buried my head
in her arms as she gently rocked me.
“I’m hoping
against hope that Laura can help and if she can, how
long it will take we don’t know. I’m not sure she can
sort things out like that (and she clicked her finger).
However, you seemed so happy wearing these new
disposables and I thought, if you have to wear
nappies for any longer I want you to be just that...
happy.”
She stroked my
hair then patted my spongy bum.
“I have total
faith in my boy... I always have.”
She hugged me
some more.
“Look if it’s
upsetting you then you don’t have to see her again it’s
just, well, we think you might be happier if we find a
way over this... anxiety.”
“No, no mum,
she’s not upsetting me but, but, I’ve never had to think
like I am now and consider things I’d just sort of let
slide.”
“Well,” she said
pulling me up to face her, “she seems to be doing her
job but, I can feel my boy needs a change so let’s get
you into something dry and then I’m sure things will
seem a bit clearer... or at least not as soggy.” She
smiled at her weak joke and pulled off my shorts.
#
Mum has never
shirked from changing my wet nappies. All through my
life, when I needed a nappy there was one available and
when it needed changing, she got on with the job without
any fuss.
“I see you’ve
got a pull-up on... is that from the doctor’s?”
I nodded.
Well let’s get
that off and into something dry and then you can tell me
how it went.”
She went to the
dresser drawer and pulled out an Abena disposable.
“Shall we try
one of these? I’m sure you’ll feel much more
comfortable.”
I nodded
enthusiastically...then had a thought.
“It’s OK mum,
I’ll do it myself,” and held out my hand for her to pass
it to me.
“Are you sure
sweetie I don’t mind?” She didn’t look convinced or was
she sad that I wanted to do it?
Whoa...
is that it? Mum had enabled me all this time because she
liked to...? No, it was a stupid thought. Why would mum
want to keep me in nappies, it just didn’t make sense.
However, now that thought was in my head... it was
taking some shaking.
“Well, if you’re
sure,” she beamed in support. “Five minutes and dinner
will be ready.”
Once she’d gone
I stood in my wet Tena and although knew this was
something I could do, I was sad that I’d dismissed mum.
She always did it with such love and care. I nearly
called her back but didn’t and eventually struggled with
the tapes a few time to get it to fit properly.
Whilst there was
a pile of freshly laundered colourful plastic pants I
wanted to ‘get back to basics’ though I wasn’t sure why.
I searched for an opaque pair of plastic pants, pulled
them up, looked in the mirror and it hung reasonably
well. Although the padding around my bum seemed a little
more puffy than usual I didn’t mind. This time I
consciously dragged my jogging bottoms over it all and
set off to the kitchen where Jenny had prepared our
meal.
#
As we ate I
brought the family up to date on my session with Laura
Ames and we exchanged thoughts and areas of chat for my
next visit. I told them I hadn’t as yet booked a second
session but they all encouraged me to get one sorted as
soon as possible ‘whilst I had momentum’.
No one said
anything about my cover up but the crinkle as I moved
about seemed a lot louder under my jogging pants than it
ever did whilst wearing shorts. That surprised me.
After we’d eaten
dad was helping Jenny with her maths homework, he’s a
whiz with numbers, which I think is where I get my
interest from and why, as a result, a computer is more
than a games machine to me. In fact, no matter how
brilliant the graphics are, or hectic the storyline is,
it’s the mechanics of computing that I find more
fascinating. Anyway, whilst I helped mum with the
washing up it gave me chance to quiz her further about
Laura.
“Mum just how
well do you know Doctor Ames?”
“Quite well,
why?” She carried on washing the dishes whilst I wiped
them dry.
“She said she
knew about my problem.”
“Well you saw
her when you were seven and was a child psychologist at
the hospital. We were worried then that the storms had a
strange effect on you and, at the time, she helped you
through your anxieties.”
“Yes, I remember
all that but she seemed to be bang up to date on my more
recent problems.”
“Ah yes, that
will be me. You know her and husband Peter are clients
of your father’s?”
“No I didn’t.”
“Well, I don’t
suppose you should really but we’ve been online friends
since you were her patient and because of that
connection and your father’s, we chat online and on the
phone occasionally.”
“Was it you or
her who suggested I should make an appointment?”
“I assume it was
me simply because I’d mentioned the latest development
with you on our last call and she seemed interested. I
was worried it might turn into something more serious
because, whether you’re aware or not, you’ve never lost
control of your bladder like this before.”
“Mmmm.” It was
as if mum had said those magic words ‘lost control’
because I suddenly realised I was leaking into my
M4. At this rate I’d be using up that supply she’d got
pretty damn quickly.
“Will you be
speaking with her tonight?”
“I can do if you
want.”
“Erm, Um.”
Without warning I was suddenly engulfed in tears. I had
no idea where they had come from but suspected this was
something I’d held back in the doctor’s office.
Unexpectedly, my body shivered and I felt like I had no
control over anything
Mum was quick to
hug and hold me saying not to worry, we’d sort it all
out and other comforting phrases. I believed her.
Mum spoke into
my hair as she reassured me.
“I’ve said it
before... and we’re all in agreement... you’re safe with
us sweetheart. You don’t have to be anyone but yourself.
We’ll do what we can to help so no matter how long it
takes... your family will be right by your side.”
“Mummm,” I
sobbed, “why have I regressed to a baby who can’t...”
“Oh darling...
you’re not a baby and it doesn’t help if you think in
those terms. You’re an adult who just happens to need a
nappy for the moment. You’ll get better... you’re just
having some problems at the moment...”
I’m sure there
were another few words mum was going to add but I needed
her cuddle more than I needed pleasantries.
“Thanks mum.” I
squeezed her tightly.
She squeezed
back and it was at that moment, stood in the middle of
the kitchen, I did something I hadn’t done for years...
I let out a startled stifled groan whilst filling the
back of my new Abena.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 12
I don’t know
who was surprised more by this sudden and copious
expulsion. Of course, it had been accompanied by an
almost silent wet fart but mum knew immediately what had
happened.
“Oh sweetie...
this can’t be good.” She hugged me tightly and another
splurge was forced from my bottom and into the shitty
fabric.
“Muummm!”
I sobbed. “This can’t be happening.”
“Don’t worry
love... just make sure you finish and everything goes in
the nappy, we don’t want any further accidents.”
I think she knew
I’d not make it to the bathroom in time and wanted to
keep the ‘fallout’ to an absolute minimum. I felt stupid
standing there with mum clasping me to make sure I
finished crapping in the disposable.
The feelings of
helplessness and shame rushed through my body. I was
only glad that dad and Jenny weren’t witnesses to this
latest incident. Although how I thought I’d be able to
keep it a secret is anybody’s guess.
I wanted to run
and hide my humiliation but I couldn’t move. The stuff
kept pouring out and I had no response other than to
stand and wait. Mum checked that the plastic pants were
keeping everything where it should be as slowly I
started to spread my legs, desperate for the fabric to
soak up as much as it could.
I’d had no
warning and there was no thunder in the area. I didn’t
think I was all that anxious even though I’d spent a lot
of time thinking about my situation. Surely just
thinking or talking about it couldn’t induce such a
response... could it?
I wondered if
I’d been more scared of seeing the psychiatrist than I
thought and this was the result. I hoped not because
they were all keen that I should continue with therapy.
Shaking in my
mother’s embrace I eventually told her I didn’t think
there was any more.
“Are you sure
sweetie?” She had the same tone as when I was younger
and had an equally messy accident.
I nodded but was
far from convinced that was the end of it.
“OK, can you
walk to the bathroom and we’ll get you sorted?”
She let go and I
stood traumatised for a moment transfixed by the weight
of stuff that now hung in the heavy folds of the
absorbent fabric. My rear felt like it was loaded with a
couple of pounds of lumpy mashed potato as slowly, and
very deliberately, I waddled after mum. Each step
reinforcing the disgust I was feeling and the horror
waiting when she pulled down my plastic pants. I’m sure
neither of us was looking forward to that.
I kept mumbling
‘sorry, sorry, sorry’ from behind my thumb, which
I hadn’t realised was occupying my mouth. Mum gently
eased it away and, as I stood in front of her, I’d never
felt more like a three year-old then I did at that
moment.
Although earlier
I might have wanted to prove my independence to put on
and take off my own M4, I was reluctant to push for
that. Mum didn’t ask, once she could see I was standing
in the shower stall and any drips would be caught she
pulled down the plastic pants. The glossy material held
but was streaked with overflow, and in trepidation she
tugged at the tabs.
The mess and
stink were horrendous as the entire construction slopped
onto the tiled floor. I could hardly look her in the eye
as she grabbed the shower hose and started to spray the
various bits stuck to my body. Shaking with
embarrassment I watched mesmerized as the sludge
slithered down the plughole.
I took quite a
lot of cleaning up... as well as air-freshener sprayed
around in the bathroom... before there was a return to
any kind of normality.
#
There was
absolutely nothing I could think of to say by way of
explanation. I’m not sure I could have rectified the
situation so was glad mum had been there to take charge.
In those terrifying moments I realised how dependent I
was on her for just about everything.
As I’ve said
before, she’s not one to make a fuss but certainly on
this occasion I would have been totally lost without
her. I wouldn’t have known where or how to get started
and suspect I’d be still standing there, nappy even
fuller, wondering what to do.
Once I was all
tidied up and back in a fresh disposable I tried to make
sense of it.
“Mum, I don’t
know why that happened... I had no warning... I...I...
just... erm...”
She’d searched
through the top drawer where my plastic pants were kept
and found another pair of those rather thick rubber
pants I’d worn before.
“No sweetheart,
I’m not sure either but,” she had me step into them then
inched the rugged fabric up my thighs and over the M4,
“let’s make sure if it happens again we’re prepared eh?”
I merely nodded
as she patted out the trapped air and smoothed the slick
white material into place.
“There, they
should do. Now, are you coming down or staying up here?”
I was grateful
she’d let me wear a disposable because normally for bed
I had to wear a terry cotton nappy. At least she could
simply throw this away should I have another
catastrophe. I’d hate to think how many times a fabric
nappy would need washing to get that much crap out.
Although as I thought about it, mum must have had to do
so on quite a few occasions in the past.
“I think I’ll
stay here but please don’t tell dad or Jenny... it’s so
embarrassing.”
“To be honest
sweetie, I don’t think it’s a secret... that smell
permeates the entire house.”
I sighed. That’s
all I needed... being responsible for creating a big
stink.
#
It was still
relatively early. The summer sun was slowly sinking but
the pale blue, cloudless sky seemed to bring out the
crowds. I could see from my window that the lightning
struck tree had created an attraction because a few
people had gathered to inspect the damage. It was then I
noticed the orange tape surrounding it so perhaps it was
too dangerous to get near.
A couple of
joggers looked pretty bright as the setting sun caught
their day-glo orange vests and shiny black lycra shorts.
A few of the neighbourhood kids were out on their bikes,
whilst Mrs Johnson and Mrs Ramrish were chatting and
guiding their babies in push-chairs side-by-side down
the road. In fact it was quite a busy evening with
people everywhere but my eyes returned to the broken and
splintered tree in the distance.
For the briefest
of seconds I literally had a flashback – I relived that
strike hitting the tree, bursting into flame and that
intense rumble that surrounded the house. It all
happened in a moment but I could feel my disposable
having to work soaking up the deluge I’d just made.
However, even
though I thought it had all happened instantly it was
night outside, the people had gone and only pale
darkness illuminated the gloom. I had no idea how long
I’d been standing there until I heard dad’s voice
quietly ask if I was doing OK.
I shook myself
and tried to say something but it just came out as
garbage. It was then I noticed I had my thumb stuck in
my mouth so couldn’t speak properly.
“Yumsh...
shess...mmmmussssm.” was all I managed.
Dad seemed to
understand. “OK, night Anthony, sleep well.” He closed
the door and left me to my thoughts.
Where had all
the time gone?
Despite the
expanded bulk of my disposable I didn’t feel like
changing so crawled under the bedclothes and had no
recollection of anything else.
#
I woke up
grateful I’d had an uninterrupted sleep but with the
taste of orange in my mouth. I had no idea what time it
was but my face felt strange lying on a damp surface. It
took a couple of seconds to take in the fact that my
thumb was still embedded between my lips and a pool of
drool was the culprit.
I withdrew my
digit and stared wondering why I’d started sucking on
it. It was wet and slippery but I was enthralled. So, as
I used to do when younger, speculated on whether by
sucking on it you can make it smaller – like a lollipop?
Also, did I somehow have the residue of something
orangey still on it? I reached under the cover and
inspected the billowing disposable hidden under those
sturdy pants and thought no matter what time it was – It
was time for a change and I should get up.
I glanced over
at my bedside clock it was just after eight and I could
hear family moving around.
I carried the
soaked pillow to the windowsill and hoped, if I left it,
that the sun would dry it out before I needed it again,
then turned and shuffled towards the bathroom. Jenny was
just coming out of her bedroom heading in the same
direction.
Suddenly it
turned into a competition as to who could get there
first. Even though it was little more than a couple of
yards we both wanted to win.
“Ant stop,” she
screamed horror struck, “what’s that hanging from your
nappy?”
She looked
scared so I immediately halted to inspect what had
frightened her. As I turned to see what was trailing
behind me I heard the word “Sucker” as she disappeared
into the bathroom and the lock slip into place. She’s
such a clever kid because that was a distraction I’d
never have thought of. Mind you, she doesn’t wear a
nappy so it would have been a pretty stupid thing to
say.
I know from
experience that she was going to be in there for quite
some time so toddled back to my room and stared out the
window.
#
It was another
glorious day but in the distance I could see workmen and
they were assembled around the tree. They’d cleared a
large area as a safety measure and for some bizarre
reason I thought they were giving the tree some
protection... like my nappy is mine... the barriers were
for its benefit. Daft I know.
However, it soon
became clear they weren’t there to shore up the tree but
to bring it down.
The men wore
hi-vis jackets and I could see a couple of them had
chain saws, whilst the others had ropes. There were four
of them and a truck with a flashing hazard light parked
nearby. It suddenly became more than a simple truck as
some machinery started and a ‘cherry-picker’ began to
rise up.
I wondered if
the tree had become unstable because the night before
I’d noticed several branches lying on the ground. I
hoped no one was hurt when they fell. Anyway, it looked
like my lightning tree wasn’t going to dominate the view
for much longer as the men immediately attached ropes to
branches and began the work of lopping at various
tentacles.
Because of my
connection with it I had thought I’d be emotional... but
although I felt something, I just wasn’t sure what.
#
Mum shouted from
downstairs that breakfast was ready so reluctantly I
left my post and headed for the kitchen. As it was
Saturday mum had made a lovely cooked breakfast but was
surprised to see I’d arrived and sat down wearing only
my bloated padding.
“Spending the
day like that?” She nodded her head in the direction of
the substantial package between my legs.
“Nah... Jenny’s
in the bathroom...”
“She isn’t. She
left about thirty minutes ago.”
“But it’s only
eight....”
“No sweetie...
it’s twenty past nine... where have you been?” She asked
concerned.
I was taken
aback to say the least. Loosing track of time and having
no memory was becoming too regular an occurrence.
“Oh, I’ve been
distracted by the workmen, you know, over by the tree.
It looks like they’re cutting it down... maybe it’s a
hazard or something?”
“Are they? I
wondered what that distant buzzing was... that’s a shame
it was nice to have a talking point.” She shrugged.
I wriggled in my
seat and could feel the bulky full cushion under my bum
was more than a little squishy.
“Any plans for
today?” She came and sat down and the two of us tucked
into a ‘Full English’.
“Not really,
thought I’d nip over and watch the men... see what they
do with the tree.” I smiled because I knew one thing for
certain. “I expect Mr Bennet will be there stocking up
on logs for his wood-burner.”
Mum gave out a
laugh. “I bet he’s not the only one, no matter what time
of year they’re obsessed with collecting wood for the
winter months.”
She’s correct.
Any time the wooded area had a branch fall there’s
always someone out quickly to harvest what they could
get. Sometimes it’s funny to see a person arrive with
their wheelbarrow a little late then leave looking
pretty angry and frustrated.
“You got any
plans?” I ventured.
“Just more
laundry this morning,” she pointed out the window and I
could see the first batch already hung out. “I’ve put
Jenny’s bedding on as well so that, together with your
nappies and stuff... makes a large load.”
I didn’t say
anything because even though it might sound like mum was
having a go at my contribution, she wasn’t. I could tell
by the tone she was just stating a fact.
“This afternoon
I’m meeting up with some of the girls for a coffee...
might recommend that hotel we stayed in last weekend.”
She ventured as another forkful off egg, beans and bacon
disappeared into her mouth.
“The ‘girls’
meant, the ladies from the book club mum’s a member of.
I’ve met them at a get-together they had at our house
and a noisy, boozy but fun quintet they are too.
“Dad...?” I
ventured.
“Playing golf
over at Pannal... a client’s invited a few from the firm
so don’t expect him back until later tonight.”
“Oh very nice...
I wonder just how much business gets done at each hole.”
“Well he says
it’s the best office in the world for finalising
details.”
#
I finished my
breakfast and washed up whilst mum attended to the next
load for the machine. By then the Abena was beginning to
get more heavy and uncomfortable but oddly I didn’t mind
the weight as it hung, thanks to the rubber pants,
firmly to my hips. However, I waddled back to my room
and stripped leaving the rubber pants and my soaked M4
glued together on the floor as I went off to wash. I was
surprised when I thought about Jenny and how absorbed
I’d been in the workmen I hadn’t heard her finish.
Anyway, it was
my time now and I enjoyed the firm flow of the shower as
it cleansed my body and perked up my spirit. I’d been
under the spray for some time so when I returned to my
room mum had tidied up. Gone were my used disposable and
rubber pants, and laid out on the bed was a large terry
nappy and a couple of thick soaker pads. I was
going to wear one of the Abenas but obviously mum
thought I’d be better off in a fabric nappy.
Mum waltzed in
carrying a plastic bag.
“These are
replacements for you to take into work and give to Mrs
Dewhurst. If you can put them in your bag now so you
don’t forget.”
She then
proceeded to slide them in herself. I watched but said
nothing. Strangely, the shower had left me invigorated
and felt there was now a purpose to my day.
“Right,
nappy...” Mum said in a ‘let’s get on with it’ way.
“I was going to
wear a disposable today... I thought it might be too hot
to wear a fabric one...”
“Well, if that’s
what you’d prefer, fine. But, after last night, and your
soggy disposable this morning, I would have thought
you’d want as much protection as possible just to make
sure.”
Mum was correct
of course. Despite knowing what I’d done I wasn’t
thinking what I’d be like if it happened again.
She saw
hesitation and simply indicated I should lie out and let
her get me wrapped and ready for the day. No fuss,
though I could feel the way the extra padding splayed
out my legs. She went to the drawers and pulled out a
couple of pairs of plastic pants for me to choose.
I pointed to the
blue pair so that’s what was shuffled over the huge
pillow hugging my groin.
“OK love, that’s
it for now. Are you going out or...?”
“Actually,
whilst in the shower I’d had a thought about one of the
projects I’m involved in at work. I spent most of
yesterday thinking about meeting with the doctor I
didn’t get much done. So, I might spend a bit of time on
my computer catching up and see if I can come up with
anything.”
“Well, that’s
very admirable... I’m sure Mrs Dewhurst will appreciate
your diligence.”
I smiled at
mum’s praise but really, I couldn’t have gone too far
with the thickness of the padding... I’d have been
sweating like a pig in heat... in the heat, so this
seemed like a sensible way of spending my Saturday.
#
Despite my
intentions of going to see what the workmen were up to,
once I opened the computer I became gripped by the way
my mind was working. I was eager to produce something
grown up. I didn’t want to play games, surf Google or
look up my favourite sites. Once I’d opened the page and
reread the brief for the new office project I set to
work.
Although the
padding was huge I was very comfortable sitting and
working. The room was pleasantly warm and although the
plastic billowed out a bit I flattened out the air,
which was becoming a bit of a game in itself, and I was
back in my comfort zone. I didn’t even bother with any
shorts and, to the accompaniment of the distant buzzing
saws, set my mind in work mode.
Each little
movement had the effect of reassuring me of the extra
padding’s presence. With my legs wide
open the smooth plastic bulge was a beacon to my hand as
I stroked and fondled the area as I worked. This was a
lot better than sucking my thumb but didn’t detract from
the task. I found the activity and the fabric comforting
and inspiring.
Despite the
distance I was from the tree I could hear voices, yells
and the occasional crash as branches fell to earth.
Mentally I could imagine the tree being pruned down bit
by bit. The different sounds the machinery made as it
cut deeper or at an angle, although loud, didn’t disturb
my concentration.
I hadn’t done a
great deal of coding but I saw where I might help by
changing the ‘sorting valuation’ and one or two other
small changes, which I hoped would improve the system.
There was also a batch of historical files that needed a
storage space, so I gave that some thought. I
hadn’t realised how long I’d been working on it until
mum came in and asked what I wanted for tea. Thankfully,
mum’s big breakfast had seen me right through and I
hadn’t even stopped to drink or go to the toilet.
That was over
six hours nonstop intense work and I had no idea where
the time had gone. I guiltily looked down at my nappy,
surprisingly it was dry. I’m sure, with all the
inadvertent massaging I would have been aware had I wet
but, none of that worry had entered my head as I’d
become preoccupied with the project.
Although I
didn’t think I needed to go I slipped along to the
bathroom and, after a bit of faffing around, managed to
pee into the toilet and not the nappy. I had needed to
go because the power and length of the stream proved my
bladder was full. Still, this was the first time in ages
I’d been able to negotiate where and when I wanted a
piss.
I returned to my
room feeling cocky at this new development and looked
out the window to check what was happening in the world.
It was still hot and busy but the tree had all but gone.
It was strange because the constant buzz of the saw had
been a background noise to my work and seemed to spur me
on.
Without getting
up to check I just imagined the tree being cut down
piece by piece and bizarrely, that made me feel
different... like... as the tree came down I was
developing in some way. Stupid I know but I’m getting
strange and miscellaneous feelings a lot these days and
wonder if that’s down to my daily padding.
Now all I could
see and hear were the workmen using the shredder to get
rid of the small branches and leaves but the trunk had
been reduced to a mere stump.
I sighed but,
maybe this was a sign. I could now go to the loo when I
felt the need – so that was definitely some kind of
progress.
I began to think
what the tree looked like before and just couldn’t bring
that image to mind and it was with a sense of relief I
returned to my computer. Perhaps the tree had signified
something and now it was gone. Well?
I emailed Mrs
Dewhurst the file and then downloaded my work onto a
memory stick as back up. I was quite pleased with my
day’s work and smugly slipped the colourful flash drive
in my backpack alongside the change of nappies mum had
already shoved in there. Hoping, come Monday morning, my
efforts would be both appreciated and successful.
I wasn’t wet and
I’d done some work... so not a wasted day. I was pretty
impressed with the fact I wasn’t soaked so, after
slipping over a pair of my loosest shorts, joined mum
out in the garden to take in the lovely late afternoon
sun.
#
Jenny was saying
how upset a few people were that the ‘lightning tree’
had been cut down by the council. It had become a bit of
an attraction and kids seemed to like playing around it.
Unfortunately, as a couple of branches had broken off it
had been deemed unsafe and, fearful of injuries and
being sued, the decision had been made that it had to
come down.
Mum asked what I
thought, seeing as I’d witnessed the dramatic strike,
but I simply shrugged.
“If it was a
danger I suppose it’s for the best... safety first?” I
cheerfully patted my bulging nappy to emphasise the
point for some reason. I couldn’t explain why I felt
relief because I was sure it had nothing to do with the
danger it posed in that state. It felt like some kind of
mysterious oppression had been lifted.
Mum agreed –
safety first but she was also a little sad that it had
gone.
“I’ll tell you
someone who’s very happy about it... Mr Bennet... he was
asking the workmen to leave the heavy branches...” Jenny
looked mischievously as she spoke, “they let him take a
few logs but I think he wanted the entire tree.”
We all had a
giggle at Mr Bennet’s expense.
Mum then looked
over at me.
“And how has
your day gone?” She peered at the bulge under my shorts.
“Did you need any extra...?”
“No, no... still
the one from this morning... and still dry.” I said with
some degree of accomplishment.
Her eyebrows
raised. “Well that’s some achievement isn’t it?” Both
mum and Jenny nodded impressed and I felt pretty pleased
with myself as well.
#
Sunday morning I
woke to discover another surprise, I wasn’t wet. There’s
no doubt that my mind had had a sort of ‘jolt’ and,
without any real reason to do so, put that down to the
tree disappearing. The pleasure I felt at waking up to a
dry nappy was immense and made me snuggle down in my
warm bed to enjoy the sensation a little longer. The
plastic pants were warm and smooth as I ran my
investigating hands over the padding feeling every soft
bump and enjoying doing so.
Over the years
I’ve worn padding many, many times but it was only at
that comfy, dry and richly-padded moment that I
appreciated actually having to wear it at all. Although
I try to be a positive person in all things, this was
perhaps the first time I thought this huge cushion of
security meant more than I’d acknowledged in the past. I
was positively glowing from within at having to wear
such an item. Normally I just see it as something I
needed to wear but now there was a shift in my thoughts.
Because I wasn’t wet I felt I was in control.
Early morning
euphoria filled my entire body and I don’t think I’ve
ever felt more tranquil and alive at the same
time. It was a brilliant emotion and one I didn’t want
to break by getting up. Then dad knocked on my door and
asked if I was ever going to get up. I didn’t want to
but remembered I’d agreed to mow the lawn and help him
in the garden... so had to get a spurt on.
Of course, as
soon as I thought about moving, and I knew my bladder
needed emptying, I let loose and soaked the thing... but
on purpose. The knowledge of what I was doing made me
smile guiltily as the warm piss filled the material and
soaked around my cock, balls and arse. The feeling just
got better... I was in control. However, that orangey
taste returned and I wasn’t sucking on anything.
“Morning
sweetheart.” Without knocking mum bounced in with her
usual happy demeanour and asked if I was wet.
“Yerrrr, ‘fraid
so.”
“So, nappy or
disposable today?” She obviously wanted to get things
underway so she could then start on her projects.
“It’s OK mum,
I’ll sort myself out.”
She looked
surprised but suppose knew I was hiding a warm,
wet nappy and didn’t want to embarrass me any further.
I mean, there
had been a few times over the years when I’d peed just
before I’d woken up and the freshness of such a wet
nappy looked like I’d done it on purpose. Who knew I’d
actually done so this time?
“Breakfast is on
the table and your dad wants to get things started as
the forecast is for rain later.”
“OK, I’ll be
down in a minute.”
#
It was nicely
warm as I ventured out into the garden wearing a
freshly, self-applied Abena, twinned with see-thu
plastic pants under my khaki shorts. I quite liked the
slight crinkle as I walked though it wasn’t as
cumbersome as the previous day’s nappy. Dad had got the
electric lawnmower ready and was pottering around in the
vegetable patch under the watchful supervision of mum.
Jenny’s full social calendar meant she was off somewhere
with her army of mates, probably making all the boys
drool.
The pleasant
sensations running through my mind and body were giving
me the best temperament ever. Even better than walking
along the cliff tops with mum, I just couldn’t
understand why I suddenly felt this elated.
Understand, I’d
gone to the toilet when I wanted, I’d wet my night time
nappy when I wanted and I was wearing a disposable,
which was what I wanted. And yesterday I’d even put in a
full day’s work on my day off, which I wanted to do...
everything seemed to be working for my benefit and that
had left me exhilarated. It meant, for the moment at
least, I could do without wearing a nappy but... wanted
to.
The only time
I’d ever come near to feeling like this was when I
received confirmation of getting the job. However, that
had its own affect with me then spending weeks wearing
protection. It didn’t feel like that on this occasion...
I had a choice.
As I paraded up
and down the front lawn pushing the mower I felt
strangely at peace. The noise was a soft electric motor
drone, which, together with the rubbing of my plastic
clad thighs and gentle hug of the M4, was giving me a
pronounced waddle and sway to my own rhythm. Every now
and then, as I turned to cut in the opposite direction,
my shorts would catch a slight breeze and send a ripple
of cool excitement up the legs.
I finished the
front and, after a bit of more intense micro clipping of
the hedge, was pleased with the result. Mrs Johnson,
still guiding her baby daughter, who I think is called
Sandra, stopped to comment.
“Well Anthony,
that looks like a job well done.”
“Thanks, but I
have a very demanding boss... she’s not one to let me
slack at all.” I replied with a smile that I hoped said
I was only joking.
“Is your mother
around by any chance?” She queried.
“She’s out the
back planting winter vegetables with dad I think...
would you like me to get her?”
“No, it’s OK...”
“It’s no trouble
it will only take a few...”
“Well, in that
case... Yes, please I’d like some advice on Alexandra
(not Sandra)” Her eyes indicating the sweet, dummy
sucking baby in her stroller.
“I won’t be a
minute,” and pushed the lawnmower back around the corner
and told mum she had a visitor.
“Oh, OK, I
wonder what she wants.” She looked questioningly at me.
“Something to do
with her baby I think.”
“Little Zanda...
has she brought her?” Mum bucked up no end as she
hurried round to the front garden.
I heard
enthusiastic greetings but set to work on the much
larger rear lawn. I rubbed the front of my shorts and
felt the smooth bulge underneath - God it was a good day
and I felt wonderful yet couldn’t explain why I had such
a spring in my step.
Meanwhile, dad
had set the ladder up against the security light that
had been out for a few weeks now and persuaded me to
change the bulb. It was fascinating, just that little
extra height and the cooling breeze that whipped around
my padded crotch produced a very pleasant sensation.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 13
As dad
predicted the weather changed just as we put the
finishing touches to the garden. Mum was happy the rain
would help bed in her latest crop, dad moaned about his
back, whilst I was glad to finish the lawn, which looked
pretty neat. Jenny, who’d managed to avoid any
involvement, arrived home from friends wondering how
long until the Sunday roast would be ready. Mum hadn’t
cooked.
“Just grab what
you fancy from the freezer,” she looked around at us
all, “that goes for each of you and I’ll cook it when
you’re hungry.”
Dad said he
fancied one of her homemade lasagne and we all agreed
that would be great but, as we were all starving didn’t
want to wait. I followed Jenny into the kitchen to get
things underway and whilst she searched the freezer I
set the oven to heat up. As I bent over fiddling with
the temperature and timer I had a sudden childish desire
to let rip but wasn’t too sure if it might be more than
a fart.
That bloated
feeling could so easily be got rid of by a sudden
explosive blast, which would be both very relieving and
very, very funny. A fart is always funny.
However, remembering when I’d filled my pants earlier,
and the awful sensation of a nappy full of ‘mashed
potato’, made me think again.
Jenny produced a
large dish and announced that seeing as we’d all been
working in the garden she would attend to lunch. As we
stood side-by-side at the oven it was the first time I
really noticed she was slightly taller than me and of
course, with her fourteen year-old boobs snugly
emphasised under her t-shirt, looked like my big sister.
I was glad I didn’t fart because next to her it would
have made me appear a silly little kid.
#
However, the
rain had started lashing down and I had the urge to be
out in it. So, strong was the desire that after kicking
off my trainers I quickly slipped out of my t-shirt and
shorts and wandered out into the garden. So, from
worrying that breaking wind would make me appear
childish, I’d cast off my clothes like a toddler and
raced to be out enjoying the heavy summer shower.
“What are
you doing... it’s pouring down?” Jenny cautiously
enquired.
I pointed to the
Abena. “This is already wet so I don’t think I can make
it any worse.”
It wasn’t, I
just had the impulse to do something silly and fancied
seeing how absorbent the disposable really was.
I’m not sure if
Jenny thought I was just being a little eccentric or a
complete bell-end but was laughing as I pulled off the
plastic pants and stood with my arms out letting the
downpour pummel my body.
It was a feeling
of complete freedom.
I danced,
barefoot around the garden thoroughly relishing the fact
I was an eighteen year-old wearing only a saturated
nappy... and wasn’t in the least bit bothered.
The freshly
clipped lawn felt soft and wonderful between my toes. It
was strange because I’d loved the feeling of sand as I’d
walked along the beach but this was strangely erotic.
Although, having said that, I’m not sure if that word
was registering... it felt sensuous... perhaps that’s a
better term.
My expanding
nappy began to feel heavier but even that was
‘sensuous’, I was having a great time as I slipped, ran
and danced across the freshly mown grass.
It was quite
exhilarating but when I looked around mum and dad were
both at the window looking confused. I’m not sure what
thoughts the image of me pirouetting in the middle of
the garden had produced but, whereas I was having fun,
both appeared a little concerned.
This may sound
strange but, for the past few weeks I definitely felt
like a little kid because of having to wear a nappy. I’m
surely not the only person who, because they have to
wear a nappy, isn’t immediately influenced by its
presence. However, at that refreshingly damp moment I
felt my real age, like a rebellious teen but in total
control of myself. As the rain was absorbed so was the
bladder full of pee I let loose... what a fantastic dual
experience.
#
However, this
‘giddy’ feeling had me wondering – what was going on.
One second I’m worrying about appearing childish, the
next I’ve cast off any inhibitions and not caring what
anyone thinks. Confusing?
As I’ve said
before, I’m normally a positive person and came to terms
with wearing a nappy fairly easily. Because I’d needed
one at various points in my life, so for those times,
nappies had become ‘second nature’. Nonetheless, it now
felt like I’d been released from some link I hadn’t
known I had. My mind had convinced me that I was in
total control so therefore could do anything I wanted.
My nappy was
just that, MY NAPPY and I could wear it if I wanted,
when I wanted, where I wanted... or not at all.
I couldn’t
explain why it was that I’d never quite got a handle on
putting one on correctly. Like I could put one on but it
was never satisfactory and would leak or eventually fall
down and become uncomfortable to wear. Mum had never
shirked from making sure I was always leak-proof when I
had to wear one and so I left it to her expertise to
make sure it was on correctly.
It’s only
recently that I’ve had to wear one during the day as
well as at night but I accepted that need with barely a
protest and if I was being honest, didn’t mind
continuing that comfy hug.
Nevertheless, I
planned on doing a little experiment that night and NOT
wear one to sleep in. Of course I’d still let mum put me
in my night time nappy because I’m sure she thinks it
would be for the best. However, once tucked up and
relaxed then I’d slip out of it and see what happened. I
was convinced I wouldn’t wet the bed. Then, in the
morning when I woke up all warm and dry, I’d slip it
back on and let the stream flow – knowing that
everything was now under my control.
(All that was
going on in my head as I pranced around the garden like
some kind of mad gazelle.)
Eventually, the
rain calmed, the clouds lifted and the final rays of the
day lit up a very green looking garden, which coincided
with mum’s lasagne being ready. Alas, I couldn’t just
sit down to eat whilst wet so me and mum went up to my
room for a quick wipe down and a fresh disposable.
“What’s got into
you Anthony... you seem a bit..?” She took control
wiping me down with a towel before releasing the heavily
rain soaked nappy.
“Frisky?” I said
perkily relieved of the weight.
“Nnnmmm,” mum
added doubtfully, “more peculiar.” She spread on
some lotion.
“It’s been a
fantastic day and I’m simply enjoying it... aren’t you?”
“Yes love, yes,
it has been a wonderful day...” A shower of baby powder
followed and I giggled.
“What did Mrs
Johnson want?”
“Ohh, erm, she’d
seen those thick rubber pants on the washing line and
asked where I bought them as she wanted something
similar for Alexandra.”
Now it was my
turn. “Ohh.”
I was about to
share my underwear with a baby. Well, obviously I mean,
figuratively not actually but then I thought more
positively.
“Good, that will
be very good... then we can play together and not
worry.”
Mum looked at me
as if I were mad.
For the briefest
of seconds the idea of playing with a baby had seemed a
really wonderful possibility. Then I wondered myself -
What the hell are you saying?
“Only joking,” I
tried to cover my embarrassment.
#
She remained
silent as she grabbed one of the towelling nappies and
picked up a couple of nappy pins.
“Erm, I thought,
maybe a disposable for the...”
“There’s no
point in getting you ready for bed twice now is there? I
might as well get you well-padded and then it’s done
and... you’ll be ready for any occasion.” She said the
last bit as if there was some doubt.
I thought about
arguing but decided better of it as she lay in an extra
soaker pad and pinned the thing tightly on. I don’t know
why but she seemed angry, well perhaps not angry but
definitely uncomfortable and otherwise engaged.
“Mmmm, there’s
something going on with you Anthony and I’m not sure
what it is. You are... mmm... not always... I mean...
not always you.”
I had no idea
what she meant as I’d never felt better but she
obviously thought differently. I just shrugged and we
went down for the meal but not until after mum had
reached for those thick rubber pants Mrs Johnson had
asked about and had me step into them.
“I hope these’ll
suffice.” She said half to herself.
I wondered what
was going on with mum... and how had Mrs Johnson seen
them out on the washing line? I suspected she and mum
must have chatted at some point in the back garden and
seen them out drying. I wasn’t happy if that was the
case. However, the smell of the freshly cooked lasagne
blocked any further thoughts and enticed us to the
kitchen.
#
At a couple of
points in the evening both mum and dad asked if I was OK
about the dismantling of the tree. I mean, why they
should have thought it had affected me I didn’t
understand but I assured them I was fine.
I saw mum keep
checking my bulge as if expecting a problem. I had to
admit, with her constant scrutiny I became more and more
distrustful about just how thick the padding was and
yet, I wasn’t uncomfortable wrapped up so tightly.
Throughout the
night they kept staring as if appraising what I was
doing... and I was doing nothing but watching TV. After
a while I began to feel a bit uncomfortable and excused
myself for an early night, after all I had my own plans.
I’d worked hard on the new coding and wanted to get Mrs
Dewhurst approval for my ‘diligent’ weekend efforts, so
getting into the office all bright-eyed and
bushy-tailed didn’t seem a bad idea either.
I excused
myself, kissed everyone night-night, whilst each
affectionately patted my padded bottom as I made towards
my bedroom. Normally they don’t bring attention to the
fact I’m wearing a nappy so that was different.
I got my clothes
ready for the following day and actually thought about
wearing underpants... I hadn’t worn my tighty-whities
since the accident Mrs Symanski witnessed... I smiled
because despite that incident I knew I was in control so
had that choice.
I slid under the
covers and squirmed around for a while as the rubber
slipped over the bedding I gently rubbed the smooth
surface deciding just when to take the entire bulk off.
‘No time like
the present’ I decided because I wanted to keep it in
one piece, after quite a long struggle, I slowly hauled
everything down.
Eventually I
managed to wriggle out of it and was able to leave it
all on the floor next to my bed. I pulled my t-shirt off
and lay for a while feeling the peculiar sensation of
being totally naked. I rarely sleep without wearing
something and this was so different from wearing only a
nappy I wasn’t sure I liked it. That didn’t matter as I
was conducting an experiment so the quicker I got to
sleep the quicker I could prove my new superior
control. The room was warm so being naked and only
wrapped in a sheet meant I wasn’t fighting the elements
and slipped smoothly into the Land of Nod.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 14
The crowds
had gathered outside the house as I returned victorious
from the Honours Ceremony carrying the ‘Best Ever’
golden award for all to admire. The streets had been
lined with a cheering throng as I carried the glorious
statuette in the open-topped limo.
More applause
and whistles grew as I stepped from the car and showed
everyone that I was in fact The Best Ever. The ovation
was deafening as I walked down the pathway to the front
door, bypassing the washing line absolutely filled with
my nappies and colourful plastic pants wafting in the
breeze. I grimaced when I saw them but the clapping and
cheering continued. I took the accolades until the
cheering slowly merged into jeering.
What the hell
was going on?
Voices of
derision and disapproval were now loud as rotten fruit
and vegetables bombarded me and the house.
“Quick let’s
hide.” I said to no one in particular and tried to make
my escape.
Just then a
huge wad of something soft and icky splattered against
my receding backside. Instantly followed by more slushy
impacts and someone had turned a hose on me. People were
chanting my name but not in a nice way like they had
been. “Anthony, Anthony, Anthony you fool”. I was
drowning in a sea of garbage.
“Anthony,
Anthony, Anthony... wake up son... you’re having
a nightmare.” I sighed in relief when I saw it was dad
but he looked serious and concerned. Then the smell hit
me. I’d shit the bed.
#
“Oh Anthony, why
did you take your protection off?”
It was mum and I
could tell she was not happy. In fact, had I been a kid
I suspect I’d have been over her knee getting a firm
spanking. It had only ever happened once when I was
around eight and had told lies - never again. But now, I
was almost in tears like a child and I wasn’t sure from
the look on mum’s face she didn’t think it was something
I deserved.
“Sorry mum,
sorry dad... I, I...” There was a definite sob in my
little voice as it drifted into silence.
“Well don’t just
lay there... get to the bathroom and clean yourself up.
It’s almost time to get up anyway.” Mum was back in
charge. “I’ll be there in a minute to check.”
I looked down at
myself and the bedding and everything was absolutely
covered in shit and piss. I’d never made such a mess in
my life and I had no idea why I had now. I kept saying
to myself I had it under control. Wasn’t that
what the ‘award’ was for?
I was confusing
my dream with reality but the confused and upset look
from both mum and dad had me worried.
“It’s like
when he was three.” I heard mum whisper to dad as
she set about getting me up.
After a while
she said “There’s something going on in that head of
yours Anthony and I’m not sure what but...” She paused
as if taking stock and reassessing the state I was in.
“I think we’d better get in touch with Doctor Ames and
see if we can’t get you an urgent appointment.”
She showered me,
scrubbed me and showered me again to make sure there was
no trace of my nightmare. This wasn’t the loving mum,
the caring mum I had in the hotel bathroom... it was the
officious mum who didn’t take any nonsense. Whilst she
got me ready for work I was unsettled by my own mother
as she grabbed at the various creams, powders and double
fabric nappies she had every intention of making me
wear.
Actually, it
wasn’t so much mum’s attitude but more my shame and
feeling I deserved her disapproval. I felt small and
stupid and as always mum was right to chastise me for
thinking otherwise.
“You need to be
aware of your protection young man; with the way things
are... I just don’t know what you were thinking taking
it off.” She looked at me as if I had the answer but I
was so intimidated I couldn’t do anything but acquiesce
to what she did.
My great
experiment to prove I was in control now just a
mess of my own making.
She tried to
pull up the tough rubber pants but the nappy was too
bulky so she went to the chest of drawers and pulled out
a massive pair of clear plastic ones. These slipped over
with a loud crinkle but hardly any trouble.
I was shaking
like a naughty two year-old and feeling like one but
trying to hide it. How could I have been so
irresponsible? Just what had gotten into me?
Of course I
wasn’t fooling anyone and I saw that mum noticed I was a
little scared of what had taken place. Her features
changed from obligation to concern and patted my naked
leg in reassurance.
“OK, I think
shorts will be better today even though it’s a few
degrees cooler you should be alright.”
Like a little
boy I stepped into my new hiking shorts without comment.
She was correct they did hide things better than my long
trousers but there was still no doubt what I was wearing
underneath. I didn’t want to go to work.
“Mum, can’t you
phone in and tell them I’m sick?”
“You’re not
ill... so I’m not lying to Mrs Dewhurst and I’m
surprised at you Anthony, especially after all the work
you put in on Saturday.”
Yes, mum was
correct again, I wasn’t sick just confused but proud of
the work I’d done and should be there to see my boss’s
appreciative face.
Despite wearing
a nappy mum had never babied me or made me feel I was a
burden, no one in the family had. Yet, these last couple
of weeks had affected me in ways I wasn’t sure except
for my total acceptance of having to wear a nappy. I’m
eighteen so that cannot be right but here I am... the
padding felt huge.
“Look, I’ve said
it before and I’ll say it again – if you don’t make a
fuss about it,” Mum said pointing to the shapely bulge,
“no one else will even notice.”
#
All the way on
the bus journey into town I could hear the thick padding
crinkle and creak. I had to sit very still so as not to
draw attention but I could see some school kids look
around wondering what that sound could be. I think a
couple of older ladies knew and sat smugly in their
knowledge. When I got off I could see their smiles and
bright eyes... I might have made their day.
When I got into
work I noticed a few of the team grouped around a
computer and laughing. I wondered what they found
amusing but had no time to find out as I was quickly
beckoned in to Mrs Dewhurst’s office.
I thought she’d
be impressed because of the file I’d sent but she looked
shocked and serious.
“Anthony, what
was the file you sent all about?” She asked in a very
worried manner.
I perked up.
“Yes, I spent all day Saturday on it. It’s a new idea I
had for make things work better around here.”
“Really, in what
way?” I could see her brows furrow quizzically.
“Well, as you
can see...” I went to her computer and there on the
screen was the open file. “There is...erm... I...
ummm... what’s this?”
“It’s what you
sent me.”
There on the
screen were just a bunch of childish rhymes. Nothing to
do with me and certainly not the clever improvements I’d
made to help...
“No. I mean,
I’ve never see any of this before. I mean, I don’t, I
can’t, err... wait.”
#
I emptied my
backpack out on her desk and the new nappies, pins and
associated paraphernalia dropped out as did the USB
flash drive.
Pointing at her
screen I looked as shocked as she’d been.
“Look, I don’t
know where that came from but this is a copy I’ve
brought from home of some coding for...”
I was sweating
and my stomach was churning, I couldn’t understand what
was going on. It must be some joke by one of the team
who’d found out about...
I plugged in the
USB, brought up the file and nervously clicked to open.
There were the same group of ‘poems’ that she’d just
read. I couldn’t understand it. I knew I’d written code
and come up with some fantastic changes that would help
the entire office but no... all that was on her screen
were stupid, childish rhymes.
Mummy and daddy have often said
A boy my age shouldn’t wet the bed
But if he does there is a solution
To a room full of his pollution
Grab a load of thick, thick wadding
Making sure he wears plenty of
padding
Just to ensure there is no seepage
Plastic pants prevent childish
leakage
####
Mrs Dewhurst is so kind
She cleans me up, powders my behind
She spreads the cream so nice and
thick
Around my balls and along my prick
Then at last to make me happy
Pins me in a lovely thick nappy
####
Thank you, thank you to my boss
She cleans me up when I’m at a loss
The sagging load that she sees
To her is just a simple breeze
Mummy brought in a thick, thick nappy
To make her boy once more happy
Clean and tidy she satisfies my need
Mrs Dewhurst is very nice indeed
####
“How much coding
have you done in the past Anthony?”
“Not much I, er,
ummmm...”
“I haven’t
noticed you coding much before....”
I felt that
familiar tremble, the one I thought I could control, run
through my body.
“I’m sorry Mrs
Dewhurst I don’t know what’s happened. I’m sure I’d...”
and then right on cue I felt my bladder let go a stream
into the bulky padding. “Oh no... not now.” I whined.
It took a second
or two for Mrs Dewhurst to realise what was happening.
“Anthony, are
you peeing your pants?” She seemed concerned.
The trembling
increased as did the force as I continued to empty my
full bladder. I merely nodded I didn’t know what else to
do.
“OK, let’s get
you changed quickly before anyone is any the wiser.”
#
I was stunned
into silence and became incapacitated so she had to take
charge as I was in no fit state. In fact, the truth was
I was trying not to cry but the tears were streaming
down my face and my thumb made its way between my lips.
Mmmm that ‘taste’ of orange again.
Mrs Dewhurst
seemed to know that I was going to be next to useless
and simply got on without my involvement. She pulled me
from behind her desk, unzipped my shorts and as they
fell to the floor asked me to step out of them.
Through my
voluminous clear plastic pants she could see the fabric
turning yellow and asked if I’d finished yet. I shook my
head no. She went and retrieved a towel and wipes from a
desk drawer... I was just about empty on her return.
“OK Anthony I’m
going to...”
At that moment
there was a quick knock on her door and a few of the
ladies came barging in and saw me standing in just soggy
protection and polo shirt, which hardly hid anything. On
this occasion Mrs Dewhurst’s door was not the
impenetrable barrier it was meant to be.
“Oh no, no,
no.” My mind silently
screamed.
“Ah Paula,”
Gillian said, “we’ve all read Anthony’s, erm...
revealing poems and think you shouldn’t have to bear
changing our sweet little pants-wetter alone.” She
didn’t wait for a response from either of us. “In fact,
Deidre here has organised a quick rota for all us girls
to take turns. We feel you have enough to do
without taking sole responsibility for Little Ant and
you know he’ll be in good hands.”
Oh God, I must
have copied everyone into the email, shit. ‘Little Ant’
– ‘Pants-wetter’? I wasn’t sure I liked being called
that but there was nothing I was going to do about it.
“I have to say
Anthony the way of revealing your problem is very
unorthodox but we want you to know... everyone here will
be supportive.”
I was looking to
Mrs Dewhurst to say or do something but they weren’t
giving her much of a chance to argue. Meanwhile, I stood
immobile and dumb sucking my thumb as the small group of
determined ladies stepped forward.
“You’re very
brave,” Gillian shook her head as if to say she couldn’t
believe I had to put up with this iniquity, “to be
living with this, um, problem. We hadn’t realised that
the lightning strike you told us about had had such a
devastating effect and that Paula here was helping you
through it. No need to keep it a secret any more...
we’re here for you.”
She smiled a
very understanding smile but I was left wondering what
the hell was happening. Of course, I was still too
dumbstruck to voice any sort of panic.
“We knew there
was something going on and your email confirmed it... a
sort of plea for help and understanding...” The other
lady Brenda’s voice trailed off as she looked to Paula
for confirmation.
I think perhaps
for the first time in her career Mrs Dewhurst was
uncertain of what to do. She’d been caught off-guard but
it appeared these ladies only wanted to help out.
#
They looked
concerned but despite that ‘understanding’ took great
delight in patting my thick soaked nappy perhaps pleased
to enjoy my total humiliation.
That silent but
loud voice in my head was still screaming “NO”
but doing nothing to stop what was happening.
I trembled some
more but the fact I was standing in heavily soaked
material left no doubt in anyone’s mind I needed a
change.
“Oh yes... he is
a little wet isn’t he?” Gillian looked from me to
Paula and Brenda then back and smiled.
“You’ve been the
subject of much speculation sweetie.” She had that
knowing smile on her face as she inspected just how wet
I was. “For the past couple of weeks, your lovely
padded little bottom has had us all talking... and
wondering. Now, after reading your lovely little poems
and seeing for ourselves just what a damp little fellow
you are. Well it all falls into place... it all makes
sense.”
I couldn’t
react. I mean the words were there but unable to come
out. Just what had they been speculating about?
“OK Brenda...
you’re first.” Gillian indicated the other’s in her
posse should come in and get involved. “That’s a stroke
of luck the nappies and stuff are already here on the
table.” She ran her hand over them. “Ohh yes very nice,
soft and thick... mmmm... better get crackin.”
Oh God... was
this really about to happen... please no... stop... the
protest was... silent.
Gillian left her
two lieutenants as I suppose she went to report back to
the rest of the team.
Brenda and
Deidre stayed in the room and it seemed Deidre couldn’t
wait to pull down my plastic pants and unpin the sopping
wet nappy. I just stood there dumbfounded and sucking my
thumb.
“Well good for
your mummy because she’s got her little soggy-boy all
nicely padded... we’d better do an equally good job
hadn’t we?”
“No, no, no.”
Silently circled my brain.
This was
incredibly weird. I’d been sat next to this woman for
almost eighteen months and never in all that time would
I have anticipated her to react this way. I mean, she
was always, well, pessimistic... expecting the worse.
Now she was alive and enthusiastic.
Deidre pulled
away the soaked fabric and smiled at my nakedness.
“Mmmmmmm” she purred, “what a sweet little willy, just
as I imagined.” She looked over grinning at her eager
co-conspirator who nodded in agreement.
I was
mortified but made no move to stop them.
#
They set to work
and my shame wasn’t helped by my noisy thumb sucking,
which anxiously stepped up a gear. They spent a great
deal of time making sure the area was wiped clean and
tidy. I just let it happen.
Meanwhile, as
Brenda folded the thick fabric terry square in a way I’d
never seen before, Deidre continued to clean and powder
the area ready to receive it.
“You do realise
Anthony that this... situation... only makes you more
appealing?” Deidre grinned as she rubbed the powder into
my bum. “From the moment you arrived we knew there was
something special about you and now... every
woman in the office has volunteered to change your
soaked nappies... and I’m sure the guys will join in
eventually.”
“Special?
What do they mean by that? What signs have I been giving
out?”
“You’re one
lucky little boy to have so many loving mummies and
daddies to attend to you?”
Lucky little
boy I’ve heard those words
on more than one occasion but couldn’t pinpoint where.
I know I should
have protested but confrontation was never my thing.
This had to be part of an elaborate dream as it made no
sense to me, even if the women were friendly and
diligent to their task. Unfortunately, I knew that the
chance of mum or dad waking me up for work and saying I
was having a bad dream wasn’t going to happen. I could
smell the baby powder... and taste the orange?
#
I felt like they
were treating me like a little kid and for some reason,
deep down, I agreed with them. I looked pleadingly to
Mrs Dewhurst but on this she was being totally
outmanoeuvred.
Although my
anxiety levels were high I think my bladder must have
been empty I’d soaked the nappy enough and had no more.
Then I worried about the ‘mashed potato’ scenario and
dreaded what would be said should that happen.
Brenda smiled a
strange smile as she approached with her contribution,
probably because of the pins held between her lips. She
looked very determined; the nappy expertly folded and
ready for my bum to receive its fluffy thickness.
No, no...
ohhhh... I didn’t want
this to happen but when it did... mmmm... that’s nice
and soft.
Brenda spent
some time tugging it into position and delighted in
pulling it between my legs and fastening it on tightly.
Both women had done their job with ease and competence
and I was oddly grateful to be in a dry nappy.
I tried to think
but had no idea what the future now held. Strangely I
had that tang of orange back in my mouth but
unfortunately no sign of Mrs Dewhurst’s box of
chocolates. I didn’t know why that was the case but
could have done with a chocky to suck on rather than my
thumb. However, Brenda shook out a fresh pair of purple
plastic pants (one of the three pairs mum had left with
Mrs Dewhurst) and tugged them up my thighs.
“Ohhh
sweetheart... you’ll look so... precious.” She
purred with affection.
There was a look
of resignation on Mrs Dewhurst face as the women had
taken complete control. They’d not flinched from their
work and simply treated me as a sodden little kid who
needed a change.
I’d not said a
word throughout the entire proceedings, although in my
head I’d protested this assault on my privacy.
Then Deidre
added with a smile. “Don’t worry... wet nappies on our
little office boy won’t be a problem... we’ll
look after you.” Then her face lit up even more, “AND...
I’ve got one or two things at home I think might be
useful and keep you happy.”
I stood glued to
the spot wearing just a polo shirt and a thick dry nappy
with a shiny purple cover.
“There you go,
all done,” Brenda patted my glossy bum, whilst Deidre
just looked proud.
Gillian looked
in and smiled. “My, my, you do look cute... who’s one
lucky boy?”
There it was,
that phrase again but as before I couldn’t quite place
it. Lucky Boy, Lucky Boy? In what way was I
lucky? Anyway, the fresh nappy was hugging me tightly,
which was so much better than a wet one, and I was
unreservedly grateful.
“Let’s get back
to work... we don’t want to get Paula into trouble for
having a lax office now do we? Come along baby... you’ve
got work to do as well.”
Gillian was the
eldest female member of the team and had been Mrs
Dewhurst right-hand person from long before I came to
work there. She was like a mother to everyone, always
there to listen, to help, someone to confide in and on
top of all that, managed her work with equal efficiency
and dedication.
The term ‘baby’
didn’t register as detrimental because she uses that
word in a nice way to just about all the males in the
office... of all ages. I think most of the office
enjoyed her loving and friendly attitude and I quite
liked it now.
I was led back
to my seat. Everyone smiled in reassurance then went
back to work.
Everything
remained the same yet everything had changed... how does
that work?
#
After a few
minutes Mrs Dewhurst came and sat next to me at the
computer. I hadn’t realised until she sat down I wasn’t
wearing shorts just the billowing nappy and slinky
purple cover.
“Are you OK
Anthony?” She asked with concern in her voice.
“I don’t
understand... I mean... why is everybody being...” I
shrugged, “weird?”
“I think, well,
I know, it’s because everyone likes you and wants to
help.”
“But I was
happier when no one knew.” Of course they had guessed
about my padding but were just too polite to mention it.
“Yes, yes but
you have to understand... it’s you who’s revealed your
secret... the poems.” She whispered quietly.
“Ohh yes...
but...” I was embarrassed about all that dumb stuff. “I
don’t remember writing any of that. I was
convinced I’d come up with a brilliant new system that
would benefit everyone.”
My voice trailed
because I had no way of proving what I thought I’d
done... only those stupid, stupid rhymes.
“Well, although
they were quite revealing... I did appreciate the
sentiments... so thank you Anthony... I’m glad you think
so well of me.”
“I always do...
but honestly... the tree’s gone and...” The tree! It was
unexpectedly at the forefront of my brain.
That sudden
thought made less sense than anything else. Was it
because of the tree being cut down... and if so... why?
Why would that make the slightest difference? I mean,
I’m flooding my nappy even when there are no storms
anywhere in the area. So what’s going on?
There was
nothing I could say to retrieve the situation or that my
boss would understand, because I didn’t.
She passed my
shorts.
“I think you
might be better wearing these... that is, unless you
prefer to be only in your...”
“No, no, erm,
thanks,” and tugged them up. Brenda and Deidre had done
a good job and despite the initial embarrassment, the
thick fabric nappy felt very comfy. Now everyone had
seen what I wear I don’t suppose it mattered that much.
“Look Anthony,
you said you thought you’d come up with a new system so
why not try and recreate it, hmmm? Forget everything
else just think of it as one less secret and a
‘family’,” she used her hand to indicate the entire
office, “here who want to help.”
I looked at her
still stunned but trying to take in what she was
inferring.
“Surely,” she
added, “it’s better they know than every day trying to
keep secrets and worrying about wetting and...”
“Yes, yes, I
know but... it’s just weird.” I interrupted.
#
It wasn’t just
my work mates I found weird, I felt in general things
were bizarre. I simply could not equate what was going
on in my nappy with a tree being struck by lightning.
But, the truth was, after witnessing that tree burst
into flame, pissing my pants had started again.
I couldn’t see
any connection between why I thought I was writing a
computer programme only to end up with childish
gibberish. I know I appeared to ‘lose time’ when
watching a storm but how could that effect what was
happening now? None of it was in the least bit logical
and what was worse, the control I thought I’d had was
simply an illusion.
I mean, I was
acting like a big kid thinking I could do something to
impress, only to find I couldn’t. This was getting
difficult because my mind was wandering all over the
place (or not working at all), so, just another bloody
thing for me to worry about.
Oh God... not
another anxiety to cause me to piss myself.
Mrs Dewhurst was
still trying to make me feel better.
“You have loads
of support here Anthony, and to be honest, I’m quite
surprised how they’ve all rallied around. I’m
impressed.”
I tried to
reason the situation out and explain I’m not always
dependent on nappies.
“There are times
when I don’t need a nappy. I mean, I hadn’t worn one for
ages... up until that thunder storm so...?” The thing is
- I know I sounded like a little kid trying to justify
himself.
She shook her
head.
“The thing is...
you don’t have to worry whether you do or don’t...”
#
She left me to
get on with my work but I clicked on the email file and
it filled the screen. There, as I scrolled past the
bottom of the page, almost hidden from the rest was
another silly rhyme.
The Lightning Tree
Made me pee
But now you see
It’s gone.
So, full of glee
It’s only me
Can make me pee
All day
long
Is that how it’s
going to be from now on or will Doctor Ames sort me out?
With the way things had developed in such a short space
of time, it was asking a great deal of the psychiatrist.
#
I looked at the
small digital clock in the right hand corner of the
screen and noticed it was just after noon. There was a
large empty bottle of water from the fridge, which I
didn’t remember getting or drinking and my screen just
had the two words LIGHTNING TREE written out hundreds of
times.
Again, I could
have sworn I’d spent my time working on the project Mrs
Dewhurst had set. So, was surprised, disappointed and
worried when all I could see for those few hours ‘work’
was two bloody words over and over again.
What the hell
was happening?
I began to feel
childishly awkward, as if I’d made some calamitous
mistake and was about to be found out and punished for
‘pretending’.
I looked back at
my screen and it sort of ‘flashed’ for no apparent
reason. How could that happen and was that a rumble in
the distance? I looked around the office, nothing
different there. In fact, everyone seemed to be deep in
concentration getting on with their work. However, the
words on the screen had changed and formed the shape of
the lightning tree.
None of this can
be right, I must be imagining it? This is a bloody
dream... it has to be.
Mum’s words
began to fill my head; “Prepare for the worst but
hope for the best. Prepare for the worst...” The
nappies I was now wearing were so much thicker, held
more fluid and hugged me much tighter. Everyone wanted
to ‘help’ but why.
What the hell
had mum been implying... had she expected this, this
madness?
I could feel
that strange shiver run up my spine and began to shake.
Then I looked down the bulge in my shorts appeared to be
growing and my thumb found its way between my lips.
Meanwhile, that tang of orange was nudging my taste buds
and I was on the verge of tears. I swallowed hard; this
was getting very unnerving.
This is so
stupid. My computer can’t suddenly do what it’s just
done. It can’t...
And then it
happened... with a soft mewling sound around my slick
thumb I swamped my nappy. Only this time I was aware of
it.
I cautiously
looked around and felt the warmth spreading around the
fabric. There was nothing I could do to stop it as I
looked at the empty bottle of water on my desk wondering
if I was going to fill the material with a half-litre of
pee.
The thing was,
although I was living through what was happening, it
didn’t feel like it was a result of something I was
doing. I wasn’t forcing anything it was just leaking
without any involvement from me. The guilt and shame I’d
experienced in the past just wasn’t there... it was
almost as if it was something expected.
I wriggled in my
sodden nappy and heard the soft crinkle of the plastic
pants dimmed slightly by my shorts. I quickly pulled my
thumb from my mouth and wondered, if I sat quietly,
didn’t cry or shuffle about, and if no one noticed,
could I last until I got home to change.
#
Office life was
going on around me as if nothing had changed. Perhaps it
was me just over reacting but I wasn’t convinced.
However, there was a full afternoon of work to negotiate
and wasn’t sure if a screen full of Lightning Tree would
be looked on without comment. I’d have to tell Mrs
Dewhurst I wasn’t feeling well and hope I could...
There was a
‘ping’ on my In Box. The tree ‘vanished’ and was
replaced by a message from Mrs Dewhurst.
Great ideas, I like what you’ve done,
let’s get you, me and Phil together after lunch
and see if we can make them work.
I didn’t
remember sending her anything... what was going on?
So I’d sent her
something but what and when and why was she pleased
about it?
I know I should
have been relieved but was simply further confused. What
had that thunder storm done to me because nothing was
making any sense?
I wriggled some
more because my shorts seemed to have got heavier and
tighter.
Then I saw Mrs
Patel smiling over at me and she had four kids of her
own, so could no doubt detect a wet nappy at a hundred
paces.
Doctor Ames was
going to have her work cut out because I couldn’t
explain any of this. There were too many gaps, too much
confusion, too many helpful people but unhelpful
situations... then I remembered what mum said.
“Prepare for
the worst...”
“C’mon Anthony,”
It was Mrs Patel in her soft Indian accent, “I think
I’ve got a soggy little bottom that needs a change.”
She took my hand
and led me away from the desk. I could feel my nappy
getting warm as more pee flooded the already pretty
well-soaked material.
She patted my
padded bottom.
“Don’t worry
I’ll have you all nice and clean and dry in moments...”
her mixed but endearing accent was quite reassuring.
I shrugged. I
was looking forward wearing a nice, dry nappy... there
was nothing nicer.
# # #
...to be
continued
Part 15
With that
thought in my head I followed Mrs Patel to Mrs Dewhurst
office, which had obviously been established as the
place any changing would take place. I’d apparently
missed something over the past couple of hours because
my boss didn’t even bat an eyelid as I was ushered in.
“Paula my dear,”
Her Hindi/Yorkshire accent certainly making everything
more exotic than I suppose it really was, “I’m afraid
our Anthony needs his auntie to clean him up and slip
into something a bit drier.”
The word
‘auntie’ sort of stuck in my head. When I was at school
I’d heard a couple of my Asian mates refer to all female
friends of their mothers as ‘aunties’, which I’d found
funny but also rather nice and polite.
“Yes, sure
Sunita... do you need any help?” Mrs Dewhurst was rising
from her desk and already getting out the various
supplies needed.
I hadn’t
realised I’d been holding Mrs Patel’s reassuring hand as
she guided me to the office and was still holding it as
she organised things with our boss.
She looked and
smiled at me in a calming way and insisted I needn’t
worry as she’d soon have me ‘smelling sweet... all
nice and comfy.’
“Do you want to
take down your shorts Anthony?”
It was a
friendly request but Mrs Patel’s accent made it seem
impolite to refuse so I did as asked.
“There’s a good
boy. Now Paula, do you have his clean nappies available
please and...?”
Mrs Dewhurst
already had some of the items needed in her hand and
produced the other stuff very quickly.
“Thank you. Now
Anthony,” she said so I didn’t feel I wasn’t involved,
“I’m going to unpin your nappy... and there is no reason
for you to be embarrassed. My son Devansh wet the bed
until he was ten... so I’ve had plenty of practice.”
“Oh really,” Mrs
Dewhurst joined in, “my Julie also wets like Antony when
a thunder storm frightens her...”
“Oh, so we
understand the problem of possible embarrassment for an
older child?” I was naked and she was cleaning my crotch
with very cool wet-wipes and chatting away like it was
the most natural of situations. It amazed me how quickly
this had become ‘normal’ behaviour.
“Devansh’s
problem - he was being bullied at school and too scared
to tell us. He’d rather wet the bed than admit he was
scared by the bigger boys who picked on him. Even now he
still sleeps in protection but more as insurance than a
definite need.”
“Oh dear that’s
awful, poor boy.” Mrs Dewhurst sympathised.
Mrs Patel said
all this whilst rubbing in some anti-rash cream and
powdering the area prior to my fresh padding.
“You’re not
being bullied are you Anthony?” She looked straight into
my eyes and as I hadn’t dared say a word so far merely
shook my head ‘No’. “Good, we don’t want anything like
that here do we Paula?”
“Certainly not.”
Mrs Patel got
serious. “You’re getting a little red and sore here,”
she said prodding my inner thigh near my balls, “might I
suggest you leave the nappy off when at home if you can
and let some air get to it. I had the same problem with
my Devansh,” she said talking to Mrs Dewhurst, “He wore
a dhoti around the house and the loose fit worked
wonders...”
“Make a note of
that Anthony,” Mrs Dewhurst said pointedly, “wear
something loose and cotton or linen around the house.”
She passed the
pre-folded nappy to Mrs Patel who asked me to lift then
slipped it under my bum. She added a final huge dollop
of anti-rash cream on the red area before taking the
pins from Mrs Dewhurst. Pulling all the edges together
and up between my legs, she smiled in encouragement, as
she fastened me in tightly.
Thankfully,
throughout the procedure my little cock had stayed as it
should do in such circumstances, quiet and mouse-like.
“There, all
clean and tidy. Stand up Anthony, let me check...”
“Very nice
Sunita.” My boss said admiring her work and slipped a
pair of clear plastic pants into her hand to finish the
job.
“OK Anthony
almost finished. Let’s get these over it all and you
nicely tucked in.”
She had me step
into them and gradually wriggled them up my legs and
over the thick padding.
“There you go.”
I still hadn’t
said a word as I’d been dumbstruck throughout the
proceedings. I knew it was happening but I didn’t
believe it was me it was happening to. However, now she
was finished, and both women beamed with pride, I was
pulled from my hypnotic state and said in the quietest,
childlike voice I’d ever heard myself utter, ‘Thank
You’.
“It’s our
pleasure Anthony... you never have to sit in a wet nappy
when we’re around. And, to avoid getting a rash, I’m
sure your mum has told you to get a change as soon as
possible.”
I nodded. I’d
been told this many times and, as I didn’t much like the
feel of a wet nappy, was keen to be in a fresh one as
quickly as I could.
I watched as Mrs
Dewhurst collected the wet items and slipped them into a
plastic bag for me to take home later. Now it was all
done I saw her open a draw and pull out the box of Roses
chocolates.
“I think we’ve
all deserve a little treat.” And she offered them to
both of us. “I think you’ve got me hooked on these
Anthony since you bought me the last...”
My plastic pants
crinkled as I eagerly bent forward to inspect the
contents.
Letting Mrs
Patel go first I delved in and found the orange crème
and couldn’t get it in my mouth quick enough. This time,
as I slid my shorts up and over the bulky item, I said
to both ladies “Thank You” with more emphasis as the
sweet confection burst so flavourfully on my tongue.
Mmmm I just love that orangey tang.
#
It had all
seemed so bizarre but what was even more surreal was
that within twenty minutes I was in a meeting with Phil
and Mrs Dewhurst discussing the proposals I’d come up
with and everything was ‘normal’.
I mean, I was
wearing a thick nappy under my shorts but business was
back to how it was and I wasn’t feeling out of it. In
fact, if anything, I was being quite creative and many
of my suggestions were written down by Phil who smiled
and nodded as we discussed and improved on some of those
ideas. He made notes and by the time he left the meeting
I thought I’d contributed quite a lot to the way the
company would function in future.
Once Phil had
gone Mrs Dewhurst said how impressed she’d been and
wondered if that was down to wearing a dry nappy. Of
course she was joking but it got me thinking. Then
another thought filled my head; why did I taste that
orange flavour all the time. Maybe it was connected to
being changed; were they both something I enjoyed... was
it a reward of some kind like the chocolate?
Mrs Dewhurst had
been all encouraging and at one point said I looked more
comfortable, happy and relaxed. I suppose because now
everyone knew, there was no need for secrecy and it made
a difference. I did feel relieved about it all.
When I got home
mum said that she’d had a call from Mrs Dewhurst about
the rash and wanted to check it wasn’t getting worse. So
I was whisked to my bedroom and the dry nappy (yes I
hadn’t wet on the bus home) was removed for mum to
inspect the slightly raw area.
“Mmmm, your boss
is correct you are looking a bit inflamed. OK, for
tonight just wear a pair of your baggiest cotton boxers
around the house, let some fresh air get to it and I’ll
try you tonight without plastic pants... just a loose
nappy and hope for the best.”
It didn’t appear
I was getting a say in any of this but followed her
instructions though not before I looked up the word
‘dhoti’ to see exactly what it was. Just a very loose
and large nappy from what I could gather and imagined
what it was like for Mrs Patel’s ten year-old son to
have to wear that for a while. Still, if it worked, it
worked. However, I didn’t want my ‘loose nappy’ to be
like that.
Mum rubbed in
some different cream into the reddened area and told me
to go put on some cotton boxer shorts. Of course I did
as I was told and found an old baggy pair of dad’s that
should have been thrown away years ago but, I tend to
keep clothes until I have to get rid. They were in my
bottom drawer where stuff I haven’t worn for ages (and
had more or less forgotten about) is kept. I have no
idea why I’d kept his boxers but mum grimaced as I
pulled them up my thighs.
“Where on earth
have they come from?”
I wasn’t sure if
her raised eyebrows were accusing or merely surprised.
They were a pair
of paisley boxers which had ended up in a pile of old
washing that came to me a while back but I’d never
bothered returning them. I’d not worn them just put them
in with my other shorts and forgot about them. Still
they were baggy and I was sure the air could circulate
if I was wearing them. It felt strange that I wasn’t
wearing a nappy but mum told me to be aware of what I
was doing and regular visits to the toilet were
recommended – to be on the safe side.
Just ‘dangling’
was a strange experience after having everything so
tightly compact before. The loose fit and no nappy was
very liberating and ,as I walked around, the air did
circulate and just hoped that would be enough to cure
the rash.
Although I’m
eighteen I was pretty pleased I wasn’t the only older
person who needed to wear a nappy. Both Mrs Patel’s son
and Mrs Dewhurst daughter had problems requiring padding
so, although slightly younger than me, proved it wasn’t
that unusual. Of course, I’d been online to see if there
were others who had this problem with storms and anxiety
but it was just general information rather than specific
people. There were also groups of people who just liked
wearing them, which I found bewildering.
Back in my
bedroom my thoughts were broken when mum, who was
casually adjusting items on the dresser top,
mentioned...
“I gather all
your work mates now know you wear nappies...”
“Oh, Mrs
Dewhurst’s told you did she?” I said with an air of I
have no privacy at all.
“She said you
were a bit dumbstruck by their reaction but, according
to her, everyone seemed positive and encouraging.”
“Yes, they all
want a hand in the changing when I’m wet.”
Mum laughed, I
wasn’t sure if she knew or thought I was kidding. Anyway
she left leaving a pile of freshly laundered nappies in
a bag as replacement for work.
#
We’d all been
happily surprised that the weather, for this part of
Northern England especially, had been so pleasant. We
can never guarantee a warm spell never mind the hot
spell we were enjoying but it was the topic of
conversation as we sat out in the evening air in the
garden.
Mum, our family
weather forecaster supreme, said that there was a slow
moving cooler front coming down from the north, which
would clash with the warm front coming up from the south
– the benefit of which we’d been enjoying for the past
couple of weeks. She said this did not bode well for
folk afraid of summer storms and predicted that we were
in for some very ‘unsettled’ weather in the next few of
days.
I could feel my
leg shaking at the news and a sudden urge for an Orange
Crème, but quickly made my way to the toilet just in
time to witness, a flow I actually controlled. I can’t
tell you how proud I was of this small but significant
victory. However I returned and asked mum if we had any
chocolates left. I’d never seen her look so guilty as
she confessed they’d all been eaten.
Later, when we
were all retiring for the night, mum came into my room
and searched for an Abena.
“I think if you
wore one of these loosely taped on tonight it might be
better than these.” She touched the pile of terry cotton
nappies on my dresser top.
“I’m sure the
natural fabric would be better but, if you wet, they
don’t help without plastic pants and we’re trying to
avoid them. So, let’s see if this will be OK for tonight
at least.”
“OK.” I wasn’t
going to argue because I knew from experience that, once
fluffed out, the M4 felt incredible on.
“Well, we can
try them and see... if they aren’t suitable,” she said
with a gleam in her eye, “it will be back to a nice
chunky nappy and lashings of Sudocrem.”
I didn’t mind
either option, a nappy was a nappy to me though was
interested in whether the tabs on the M4 would be easy
to open and reclose.
I pulled down my
boxers and mum came with extra cream and checked again
if the rash was getting worse.
“Doesn’t look
too bad now... does it itch or feel uncomfortable?” She
said as she inspected the area.
“No, if it
hadn’t been noticed I don’t think I’d have known...
still...”
“Well, it’s
always best not to let these things get the upper
hand... so...” as I was standing naked in front of her
she smeared a load of sticky gloop across my inner
thighs, then spread it further to cover my cock and
balls and finished with a large splurge of the stuff
over my bum cheeks.
“Muummm!”
“Look love,
let’s get ahead of this.”
She shook out
and made sure the M4 was as fluffy and soft as it could
be before making me lie out on it. She pulled the tapes
gently together and asked how it felt.
I had to admit
it felt really nice and comfy and, after my initial
displeasure at mum’s wide-ranging rubbing in of lotion,
smiled appreciatively at the final result.
“OK sweetheart,
let’s hope that will be sufficient for tonight...
ni-night.” She kissed my head and exited leaving me to
luxuriate in the soft padding.
#
The night was
still relatively warm, the cold front mum promised a
good twenty-four or so hours away, so lay under a flimsy
sheet and wriggled around contentedly. The looseness of
the M4 was most pleasant and I got quite excited as it
slipped around my vital but timid parts. The suppleness
and soft crinkle as I manoeuvred around getting comfy
(and giving myself the most wonderful sensation) was
something I didn’t usually get with my terry nappies. I
wasn’t sure I’d get to sleep because I was enjoying it
so much and ran my hand continually over the spongy
sensuous fabric.
I slept badly.
Well, actually, I didn’t sleep at all because of two
things. I was dreading wetting the bed so every few
minutes made my way to the bathroom – just in case. Then
on my return, I got back into being delighted in the way
the disposable wrapped so silkily around my bits and
bobs and kept me in a state of excitement throughout.
There was
something else I quite liked and that was the way the
blue light from my clock made the bright white of the
Abena stand out. Its fuzzy blueness was quite
enthralling, especially when I caught sight of it in the
mirror. At times, I could only make out the bright
outline so looked like it had a detached life of its
own.
In due course I
looked at the clock - 6.45 – I’d be getting up in 45
minutes but I checked and I was still dry. However,
sleep overtook me and when the alarm went off at 7.30 my
disposable was absolutely solid, I’d completely soaked
it. I didn’t even feel myself do it and what was worse,
it had leaked a bit.
I sat on the
edge of my bed sighing, I thought I’d done so well but
alas, I was still leaking without knowing.
Jenny knocked on
my door. “Bathroom’s free” and I heard her bedroom door
close. I know dad will have already done whatever he
needed to do and mum usually waits until the rest of us
have finished.
I waddled toward
the bathroom holding the soaked disposable up as it was
heavy and in danger of falling down and tripping me up.
Coming out of
her bedroom mum caught sight of me. “Oh Anthony... did
it not work?”
“Nearly, but I’m
afraid I leaked so the bottom sheet...” I pointed
towards my unmade bed, “will need a wash... sorry.”
“Not to worry
love but has the rash improved?”
“I think so, I
mean, there’s no itching or anything.”
“OK, well you
take a shower and I’ll check when you’ve finished.”
I ambled into
the bathroom and slipped the lock. I looked at my sorry
figure in the full-length mirror and sighed again. I
looked like a small child who hadn’t quite got a handle
on how he should wear a nappy. I sighed again, what a
picture.
#
When I’d
finished in the shower mum was already waiting and had
stripped the bed.
“Not too much
damage sweetheart but in future I don’t think we’ll do
without these.” She held up a pair of shiny vinyl pants.
I knew I
couldn’t have done too much damage because my mattress
has had a waterproof cover for quite a number of years.
However, I had to agree with mum that it was a mistake
to try sleeping without the added help of protective
pants.
Mum checked the
inflamed area and said that the cream she’d used was
doing its job but suggested that today we add a couple
of extra soft absorbent pads to my terry cloth as a
safeguard. She also said that there were a couple more
soaker pads in my backpack with the replacement nappies
as a further precaution if needed.
With the extra
pads, once the extra thick fabric nappy was pinned in
place, there was considerable bulk that I now had to
find a way to disguise. I wore a pair of old opaque
white plastic pants over it all but wondered what to
wear over all that. So far shorts had been the best
solution but for a change I tried all my long trousers
first. In fact, the only item that hid it with any
degree of comfort was the old green canvas lounge pants
I’d worn before.
Although I knew
Mrs Dewhurst wouldn’t object, I still thought of them as
not good enough for work. I rattled through my wardrobe
searching for possibilities but then remembered
something I’d seen earlier. Whilst looking for the
paisley boxers I noticed a grey pair of shorts I’d had
since my last days at junior school.
What I
remembered about them was that when they were bought
they had been too large and loose, mum I suspect
expecting a sudden growth spurt that never really
spurted. As a result, they were too large for me to wear
comfortably and looked silly and floppy when I tried.
They quickly got packed away eight years ago and, until
this moment, forgotten about.
Surprisingly,
even though they were that old the sturdy quality of the
fabric held my protection in tightly and concealed it
well. So, even though they were schoolboy shorts, they
were still relatively new and unworn and more
importantly I was made up that there was something that
could hide that extra wadding so well.
I was in two
minds but practicalities, and time, made me decide they
would be my choice. I found a dark blue polo shirt with
a nice gold emblem on the breast pocket and thought I
looked smart and respectable for the office. As the
weather was still nice I put on a pair of dark blue
knee-length socks and matching sneakers. Once I slid on
my dark blue hoodie I felt I was dressed acceptably for
work and no one outside would know I was wearing any
protection... well that’s what I told myself.
I didn’t bother
with breakfast as I’d taken so long to make my decision
and as mum was in the kitchen I shouted my ‘good-bye’,
rather than my usual farewell kiss. With my bag over my
shoulder I sauntered down to the bus stop confident and
relaxed in the early morning sun. As I stood waiting for
the Number 134 I realised I’d forgotten my pass so would
have to pay the fare. I was shocked when I asked for a
ticket to town I was given half-fare, it was only then I
noticed the bus was full of school kids, a few lads
dressed not too dissimilar to me.
At first I
chuckled to myself that I’d got away with paying such a
low fare but as I drew nearer my stop I felt that the
other kids were whispering and looking at me. There was
a group of girls that reminded me of Trinny and her
mates. I got hot and flustered that at any moment
something would be said and that schoolyard bullying
would start all over again. I was glad to get off before
they did.
#
Thankfully,
after that experience, the office had never seemed so
welcoming. I suppose now everyone knew about my
‘problem’ I wasn’t that worried about hiding it despite
my attempts at doing so. However, the greeting each
member of staff gave was unexpectedly reassuring and the
smiles on their faces appeared genuine.
Tommy Thompson
was the first to comment that it was nice to be back at
the first day of school. This was followed by
Greta and Sophia who also commented on my look. They
could so easily have been obnoxious about the way I was
dressed, because the longer I was in the office the more
it became obvious that everyone had noticed I’d
inadvertently dressed like a schoolboy. As it was,
everyone I assumed thought I was doing it as a joke now
the office knew about the nappies and I was taking the
piss out of my own ‘juvenile’ situation.
Mrs Dewhurst
joined in and asked me to bring my ‘homework’ to her
office (giggles all around) but she said how smart I
looked but really only wanted to know if I needed a
change yet. Asides like that happened throughout the
morning but I didn’t get one comment that I didn’t think
had some kind of friendly reassurance behind it. They
appeared to want to be in on the joke, or at least be as
supportive as they could. I have to say that I found
this attitude in an office such as this, of young and
old together, so refreshing after my incident with
Trinny.
As I sat at my
desk and worked away like the rest of them I couldn’t
help but wonder why I’d decided on this outfit. I must
have known I looked like I was going to school because
I’d sought out the grey shorts I used to wear. However,
I can honestly say, it never occurred to me until the
bus ride as to what I looked like. Even in my bedroom at
home, when I looked in the mirror, all I really noticed
was just how good the old shorts were at hiding the
padding, and for that I was grateful.
Meanwhile, it
wasn’t only Mrs Dewhurst who complimented me on my
‘uniform’ several of the team said how much they thought
it suited me. I don’t know why but I was quite enjoying
the office banter even if it did cast me in the part of
a work experience schoolboy. One thing was for certain –
being a pretend schoolboy in the office was far less
stressful than being a real schoolboy at my old place of
education.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 16
What could
have been a strange and uncomfortable day because of my
own ‘fashion folly’ ended up to being quite pleasant.
After a while the cheery comments ceased and, like the
fact I wore nappies, was just taken on board ‘that’s
Anthony’. Of course, I hadn’t planned on wearing
this get-up to the office again but the fact it caused
no major ripples was just another factor that made me
glad of the place I worked.
Even as the
office junior I wasn’t put upon to make the tea or be
expected to be at everyone else’s beck and call... it
was never like that... I was treated fairly and involved
in everything as an equal. I have to tell you, as a
sixteen year old and having that kind of respect was
very gratifying. It also helped me get out of night time
nappies and back into my sleep shorts and briefs fairly
quickly... the initial anxiety of a new job
disappearing.
Thankfully, we
have a cross-section of sexes, ages, religions, British
and foreign nationals here at the office... quite a mini
United Nations. I think that’s what pleases me most that
in such a diverse and tiny space, we all get along. When
I joined I was (and still am) the youngest member of
staff. I was nervous and unsure of myself but, as I
said, Mrs Dewhurst took me under her wing and I was
happily surprised that she’d built such a varied and
friendly team around her.
I think Deidre
is perhaps the only one who I thought might be a
problem, with her gloomy take on certain situations.
However, no matter how gloomy her predictions, she was
as friendly as everyone else and we laughed a great
deal. Of course, recently, they’ve had to contend with
finding out about my wetting problem and,
surprise-surprise, they didn’t seem to be anything other
than supportive. I’m not sure I would have found that in
any other company, certainly at school such a reputation
would have meant a great deal of misery.
The
embarrassment of those stupid rhymes, now that they had
signalled my need for nappies, appeared to have no
relevance to anything anymore. How something I’d
unintentionally done had paved the way to the office
understanding my situation I’ll never know. How the hell
does a subconscious act like that anyway?
The absurdities
just kept piling up but appeared to be to my benefit as
there was no backlash at all – well, apart from the
constant leaking.
In fact,
yesterday Deidre quietly promised to bring in something
to cheer me up. Not that I needed cheering up but she
was so excited about it that I smiled at her obvious
enthusiasm. She didn’t say what and I’d forgotten about
it until lunchtime when unfortunately I realised I was
wet. A look at the schedule showed that it was Greta’s
and Sophie’s turn to take charge of my change but Sophie
had gone for an early lunch so Deidre asked if she could
help.
Yes, I know,
I’ve accepted being changed at some point by the entire
team very easily. Their rota should have been an
anathema to an eighteen year-old but I wear a nappy and
at the moment I have no control when I wet it.
I don’t like to
wear a wet nappy for long.
However, as I’ve
said on other occasions, I also dislike confrontation
and would rather die than get into any kind of dispute.
If I did (and I do) have some doubts, I smother them
down and go along with the popular vote. On this
occasion, the team want to get involved so a couple of
minutes of me feeling vulnerable is better than carrying
around the guilt of causing an argument and changing the
congenial ambiance of the place. I’d simply worry about
it, which would cause me to get more anxious and in the
end be in a much worse state.
There is
something else, and this only occurred to me as I got up
from my desk, I trusted them all. I’ve been employed for
two years and I’ve never once heard a snide remark or
malicious gossip. There are plenty of opinions and
comments that fly around but none I remember being aimed
at anyone to be particularly spiteful.
Again I made my
way to the office, this time not led like a toddler, and
Mrs Dewhurst made way for the two women to set to the
task. Of course I’d already been changed by Deidre but
this was all new to Greta and I wondered how she’d cope
with a guy my age needing a soggy nappy change.
Greta’s father
is German and her mother is Estonian but she desperately
wanted to come to Britain to work, learn the language
and settle here. She’s almost thirty and has been here
for eight years, I just hoped changing an eighteen
year-old’s nappy wasn’t going to shake her faith in this
country.
However, she,
like the rest, had volunteered their services and
couldn’t have been nicer and more attentive. Deidre, her
assistant, had brought her own contribution to the
event, a large but colourful disposable with cute
cartoon animals all over it.
“I thought this
might be a nice change...” She beamed as she
emphasised the last word, proud of its double meaning.
She didn’t say
where she got it from or how she became its owner but
once fluffed out the two women both agreed that it was
just what I needed as it was quite thick and should do
the job just as well as my fabric nappy. It wasn’t as
cumbersome as the fabric but as the ladies discussed its
‘holding’ capabilities I found myself on the side-line
as they chatted about its obvious qualities throughout
the cleaning and replacement procedure.
Perhaps not
unsurprisingly I was a bit annoyed. I mean, were they
now trying to baby me, which was something I didn’t want
to happen. Causing a fuss was the last thing I wanted to
do but I thought something needed to be said.
“Whoa, whoa,
whoa... what’s this? I can’t wear that. I know I have to
wear a nappy but...” I tried to sound as
non-confrontational as possible.
“Anthony,
Anthony,” Deidre sighed and looked worried. “Sorry, I
just thought...”
“Look, I know
this is a bizarre situation, but I wear because I have a
problem I don’t wear because I want to...”
“Yes, yes, sorry
but, you always seem so easy going and I thought... it
might be fun for you to have, you know, something like
this for a change...” (The joke wasn’t getting
any better.)
Greta looked on
as Deidre tried her best not to look disappointed.
Deidre saw that although I wasn’t angry I wasn’t pleased
with these circumstances.
“I’m sorry, I
just thought it would be fun but now I see... sorry...
I... er, um, um...” She looked a bit deflated. However,
I didn’t think there was any malicious intent it was
just me who was concerned as to where this could lead.
I mean, there I
was, partly naked, in a wet nappy and had been dressed
as a schoolboy so I could hardly take some kind of
snooty attitude about it could I? I needed to make this
right.
“No, sorry, it’s
me Deidre, Greta,” I looked from one to the other. “I
just don’t want anyone thinking I’m a baby. I don’t want
to be a baby and I don’t want anyone to think of me that
way... it’s enough having to wear a nappy.”
I was hoping
they’d understand and they nodded.
However, I
reached over and felt the thickness and even though I
didn’t want to show it, it did feel really soft and...
“Yes,” agreed
Greta, “don’t you think this looks fun? Wearing a nappy
doesn’t have to be all serious does it?”
I’m not sure if
this was a German or Estonian trait but she cut through
my doubts as if I shouldn’t really have any. What was I
complaining about? It was a nappy, it would do the job
and it was nice and colourful... what was my problem?
Of course she
didn’t say any of this but I got the gist from her no
nonsense accent.
“No but, erm,
I...” I looked from the boring, but thick, fabric nappy
that was the alternative, and then at the colourful
characters on the new disposable and had to agree... it
looked delightful. Again I ran my hand over the soft
structure and realised it had a nice plastic texture to
it and wondered what it would feel like on. Would it be
as nice as the Abena?
The two ladies
looked on in anticipation.
“Well OK but, no
more babyish stuff... I don’t want to find a baby’s
bottle or dummy on my desk... this is it, OK?”
Both women
beamed and nodded at my decision though wasn’t sure they
were on board with it... they were just pleased to
continue their job of getting me into a dry, but
colourful, disposable.
Of course at
first I was doubtful, I had my pride and I’m eighteen
after all, but once they had it taped into place it
really did feel snug and I was enjoying its cosiness.
The colourful images just brought the entire thing to
life and found it impossible to condemn wearing such a
childlike disposable because it was obviously made for
someone bigger than a toddler. Again I wondered where
Deidre had come by it though my huge smile dissipating
any doubts the ladies had.
Anyway, before I
had chance to pull up my shorts, a couple of people
peeped around the door and whistled their appreciation.
I blushed furiously and yanked them up quickly but not
before the word had spread and others wanted to look.
The office
seeing me wearing a nappy had become ‘normal’ very
quickly. So, although slightly self-conscious, I let my
co-workers have a look and feel. They all seemed to like
what they saw and were quite vocal in their appreciation
of my new protection. Of course, there were a few ‘baby’
comments but mainly about how cute I looked and I don’t
think you can take too much offence at being called
cute. I know this should have been a terribly awkward
moment but I was actually enjoying their delight and
encouragement. Perhaps, that’s all I really want...
approval... or is that too simple (obvious)?
#
The thing is – I
don’t think the need for approval has never been a part
of who I am - I just accept stuff. I quite like me;
that’s despite sometimes wearing a nappy, despite being
small for my age and looking younger than I am. Despite
all that, which might get some people down, it doesn’t
me because I’ve been brought up in a family that is
positive, nurturing and loving. I’ve told you about
mum’s virtues on several occasions but I can say the
same for dad and Jenny... and I hope myself.
However, there
are quite a number of things going on in my life that I
can’t explain and that are more than slightly, erm,
perplexing. For instance; gaps in time I don’t know
about, writing silly poems when I thought I’d completed
a works project, and wetting without any sense I’m doing
so.
I assume it’s
all connected with witnessing that lightning strike
because that’s when it all started and mum has more or
less inferred that since that moment I’ve changed in
other, non-specific ways as well. When I think about
that stormy night it’s a bit of a jumble because I know
what I witnessed but afterwards... no idea what
happened... apart from the huge puddle.
It seems so long
ago that I used to sleep wearing just a pair of shorts
or go about my day with nothing more substantial than
briefs for urine protection. I can understand the
wetting being brought on by the lightning making a link
with my old fear and reaction to storms but the rest
(shrug)?
I’ve tried to
remember. I’ve tried to fill in those blank spots, to
make sense of it all but the only thing that seems
real... I have a leaky ‘tap’.
And there’s
another thing. After Greta and Deidre changed me I was
enjoying the fact that I was wearing such a juvenile
looking nappy. I mean, I don’t remember ever having such
a colourful disposable or nappy cover on any other
occasion growing up. Oddly, it did feel different under
my grey shorts, but I had no idea if this new reaction
was mental or physical or I just liked the idea of
something that was a bit of a novelty. It seemed that
once I was wearing a nappy of any kind I was relaxed
about having to do so and it didn’t worry me at all.
What did concern
me was that whenever I had another appointment with Dr
Ames, there would be an awful lot of stuff for her to
get her teeth into.
However, on the
bus home I was incredibly happy. Maybe, that might
because there were no school kids to give me grief... or
look menacing. The new disposable, although still
feeling very comfortable against my skin, had, despite
my concerns, brought a smile to my face. I found it hard
to believe that so many people in the office had rallied
round the way they had and was annoyed with myself for
not seeing the fun side to having to wear a nappy. It
had simply never occurred to me before nappies could be
fun.
In the past they
were there to do a job and I simply wore them without a
second thought because they were very good at that job.
Unbothered by
other passengers I sat in my seat and heard the soft
crinkle as I moved... that’s what was bringing a smile
to my face. I let my mind wander, settling on the fact
that now it might be something to take the edge off of
being eighteen and having to wear protection. Yes, the
idea of all those little colourful animals wrapped
around my bits and bobs had given a new dimension to
nappy wearing.
Greta and Deidre
(and maybe others) had quickly decided that fun was more
important than embarrassment.
It appeared from
our brief exchange that they had an attitude of - So
what... you wear a nappy... so how can we make it an
enjoyable experience? The answer - not take it
seriously at all.
Of course, to me
it wasn’t a joking matter, although, as far as I knew no
one ever made a joke of it. I simply didn’t like wetting
myself in public and wasn’t particularly pleased that
everyone now knew that I did. However, the way these two
ladies and the office in general, had gone about giving
me a different perspective was quite an eye-opener.
When I thought
about it some more, I don’t think I’d ever taken my
‘temporary’ incontinence all that seriously. I mean I
did and I didn’t. It wasn’t a problem, it was just
something that mum and dad sorted with a very simple
device to stop me ruining clothes and bedding... and it
worked. I knew that after a few days (or weeks) things
would be back to normal... only this time it didn’t
appear to be the case. The intensity and regularity of
my soaked padding giving me, and I suppose mum and dad,
room for doubt.
Strangely, I
found myself chuckling more as I gazed out the window
and wondered how many on the other side of the glass
would find as much delight as I did due to wearing such
an infantile looking piece of underwear. As the journey
progressed I felt increasingly relaxed about being in
such a situation, although, gradually became aware that
I was sucking my thumb... and had that orangey taste
again.
#
As I got off the
bus I felt the first spot of rain. The sky had clouded
over and looked strange. There was a muted yellow glow
where the clouds weren’t that dense, which quickly faded
and looked most threatening. I didn’t have far to get
home and I noticed a few other pedestrians started to
walk with purpose in anticipation. The orangey taste
grew and I thought I’d ask mum if she knew why I should
be experiencing such a strange oral sensation. Perhaps
unsurprisingly, at the same time as I noticed that tang
I underwent that familiar warming glow inside a certain
colourful disposable.
Thankfully, by
the time I got home the ominous weather had held off but
my nappy was drenched. Even after such a short distance
and almost jogging the last few yards, I had no control.
Nevertheless, the feel of the soggy material as it
rubbed against me privates and thighs as I moved gave me
altered perceptions from what I’d had before. Maybe
these juvenile looking disposables had different
properties to fabric nappies and M4s.
As I walked
through the front door my senses were assaulted by the
smell of fresh baking, it appeared mum had spent the day
at one of her favourite pastimes. When I entered the
kitchen the table was loaded with cakes, buns, biscuits
and pies, the oven was still cooking something and I
guessed that was tonight’s meal.
“We’re having a
slow cooked, Mary Berry inspired, lamb Ratatouille for
tea but, your dad won’t be home until 7.30 and I want us
all to eat together... can you last until then?”
Mum had
delivered all this as she stirred something in a pan on
the cooker but when she turned round she raised her
eyebrows in disbelief.
“Good grief, you
took me back ten years and your first day at junior
school.” Her surprise faded and she smiled. “You look so
damn cute but not an image I thought you’d like...”
I shrugged.
“These shorts
hid everything better than anything else and as it took
me so long to decide, I just threw everything else on
and didn’t realise the ‘look’ I’d created.”
“Well
sweetheart, you look perfect to me,” she came over and
kissed my forehead and stoked my padded bottom. “Mmmm, I
think someone needs a change.”
“Yes I do
but...”
“Let’s get you
sorted.” She turned off the cooker rings and was about
to follow upstairs when the phone rang. “I’ll be up in a
minute pet... just get things ready eh?”
#
I’d taken off my
hoodie but stood looking at myself in the mirror. There
was no doubt I was dressed like a school kid and at that
moment, knowing I was wearing a wet childish nappy, I
wasn’t in the least bit worried about that fact. I
looked the part and I wasn’t embarrassed about it. As I
did a little wriggle a satisfying surge of happiness and
pleasure engulfed my body. I know I’ve been having a
load of strange and disturbing ‘moments’ recently but
this wasn’t one of them - this was incredibly pleasing.
The problem was,
only last Sunday I had the complete belief that I was in
control of my bladder. I was filled with the desire to
prove to everyone I could handle what needed to be
handled. My confidence was high, my emotions were high
and I was convinced the throbbing fervour running
through my body meant I was invincible... and look how
that turned out.
I just hoped
this feeling of euphoria wasn’t just an omen to crapping
myself... again.
Still mesmerised
by my reflection my mind filled with all this ‘stuff’
when mum came in.
“That was Doctor
Ames’s office - she’s booked you in for the last session
on Friday at 6pm. I told her you’d probably have
finished work by then... was that OK?”
I was only half
listening and answered with a “Hhhhuuummm, yer...” I was
sure the way I was feeling now was somehow different
from anything I’d experienced before.
Mum noticed my
disconnection and asked if there was anything wrong. She
stood behind me and we looked at our reflections
together.
“Sometimes,” I
said wistfully, “I look in the mirror and I just don’t
appear to have grown up.”
Mum said nothing
just put her hand on my shoulder as she listened.
“The other day I
noticed that Jenny is taller than me and looks like an
adult whilst I...”
“I suppose this
outfit does make you look younger but it’s bound to...
the shorts you’ve had for ages.”
I know mum was
trying to stop me from dwelling too deeply on what I
thought were my physical flaws by a little distraction
but to me the comment just emphasised my point.
“Yes but they
didn’t fit then... they were baggy... but now, when I
wear padding underneath, they fit perfectly and hide
everything... I mean... it’s as if they were made
for me to wear a nappy.”
Mum could see my
confusion.
“I’m not
complaining mum I’m really not... but... but...
something else happened today and it made me feel...
different... no... made me feel brilliant. In
fact, as good as I felt spending time with you at the
coast.”
She smiled and
murmured how much she’d enjoyed our trip as well but I
needed to tell her more. I wasn’t sure how to make my
next move. Here I was, sort of being concerned about not
growing up and I then had to show her something juvenile
that I enjoyed. So, I took a deep breath and released
the catch on my shorts, pulled down the zip and let them
fall to the floor. I saw a weird reaction cross mum’s
face.
I wasn’t sure
what it meant but I needed to fill even that brief
moment of silence with something... so I started.
“One of the
ladies in the office brought these in.... she thought
they would ‘cheer me up’. That was her reason. Not to
baby me but to ‘cheer me up’ and have fun. She said that
if I have to wear a nappy, why not make it a fun
thing to do.”
I saw mum lost
for words but I carried on.
“Wearing
protection has never bothered me, I’ve had to do it on
and off for so long but I’d never thought of it as ‘fun’
before. And today, once this colourful thing was taped
into place... that was my only thought. This WAS fun...
but I couldn’t explain why.”
Unfortunately,
the reflection was giving me no answers but now, wearing
just my childish disposable, I felt like a toddler... an
eighteen year-old toddler... a working eighteen year-old
toddler. No wonder I was feeling confused but
surprisingly... fortunate.
Mum seemed to
have quickly got over her shock and simply patted the
wet padding.
“Oh
sweetheart... you are quite a complex bo... erm...
character. You’ve been through quite a lot over the past
few weeks and I’m sure you’ll have a lot to tell the
doctor. However, I don’t see it as a problem if it’s
something you like...”
The reflection
in the mirror was of an obviously concerned but
supportive mother and her confused little boy with
shorts around his ankles and a soggy, but cheerful,
disposable sagging at his crotch.
#
As I stripped
down, and whilst mum was getting replacements ready, I
asked if she had any idea why I was getting the taste of
orange just before I wet.
She looked at me
as if to say what an odd question, but was also
considering it.
I mentioned that
the first time Mrs Dewhurst had changed me, thanks to
the box of Roses mum had brought in as a thank you gift,
I’d sucked on an orangey chocolate and since then kept
getting that taste whenever I wet or thought about
nappies... though often didn’t realise I was thinking
about either of them.
She wasn’t sure
but did in due course remember all those years ago, when
I was three and been scared by the storm at the French
camp site, and with thunder crashing around us, I drank
from juice box, an orange juice box, which she hoped
would help calm me down.
“Your scared
eyes darted everywhere as the crashing continued around
us but you sucked hungrily on that juice... though not
sure it helped distract you much.”
My mind was
ticking over with this new information but I couldn’t
formulate any answer or any other question, anyway she
continued.
“It was the only
drink we had because everything else was packed away for
an early departure.” She shrugged. “It kept you quiet
until you finished then the tears started again and, as
we’d dispensed with a dummy by then so your little thumb
was an immediate substitute.”
She frowned as
if actually remembering that moment in full and let out
a thoughtful ‘hhhmmmm’ like something had clicked in her
memory.
She’d never
spoken about the orange juice before only that sucking
my thumb had ultimately helped to get me off to sleep.
So now I wasn’t sure if this was a trigger of some kind
because I have always favoured orange flavoured drinks
(and chocolate) over any other. It had never occurred to
me before that there might be a reason behind such a
preference. Mind you, I’d never had that historical
context before either.
#
I lay out naked
as mum cleaned me up, wiped me down and applied some
protective cream. She gave me the choice of Abena or
fabric and I asked for Abena. I watched in fascination
as she fluffed out and spread the disposable to get as
much airy bulk into the clever absorbent (but plain)
structure as possible before adding an extra soaker pad
then fastening it securely around me.
Even now, with
everything that’s happened, mum was still committed to
making sure that no matter which nappy was decided on it
should fit snugly and be the best she could make it.
That kind of devotion had been there for as long as I
can remember and not only was I grateful for it, I
realised that at whatever age I was, as long as I needed
to wear protection, I certainly didn’t want it to stop.
“OK, you choose
which pants you want, while I dispose of this.” She held
up the soggy, though still colourful disposable I’d just
been wearing. “I have to admit these are damned cute...
I wonder where she got them from.”
I nearly said
not to bother getting me any but I had enjoyed wearing
them and thought if I didn’t say anything, I couldn’t be
accused of being childish. Not sure if I was kidding
anyone but in the end said a soft but appreciative “Thanks
mum.”
The extra
padding meant that I toddled over to the drawer where I
decided on a clear plastic pair of pants. I don’t know
why because I had some coloured ones but nothing matched
the ‘fun’ little cartoon characters that had featured so
prominently on Deidre’s disposable. I’d definitely want
to wear clear plastic pants if I wore such a nappy again
- those happy characters brought a smile to my face.
I pulled on a
pair of red Adidas shorts and matching t-shirt and
checked the mirror again. Despite the puffed out shiny
nylon fabric the little kid had gone and a sporty
looking ‘me’ had reappeared. I was quite pleased by this
simple transformation – it seemed that as long as I was
wearing a nappy and shorts, I felt comfortable and at
ease.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 17
For the past
few weeks Britain had been experiencing a rather
wonderful spell of superb warm weather. Of course there
had been sporadic storms here and there (with my current
problem as a result) but by and large, it had been
perfect for most people. Despite the
equally sporadic and unplanned incontinence I simply got
on with my life as normal. I’d had this problem on and
off for a while now so this new bout of wetting didn’t
stop me doing anything.
Because I loved
the freedom they offered (and the lovely weather), I
wore shorts to work as well as at home, as much as I
could. Nappies were now my constant underwear and the
staff in the office continued their helpful changes when
needed. That was the unfortunate thing... I still hadn’t
regained control over my bladder so unexpected warm
flushes around my crotch were becoming increasingly
common.
As mentioned, I
cannot tell you how much my family mean to me. The way
they are; the love, patience and understanding are not
what everyone experiences, especially if you have my
complications. I also have to offer my appreciation
for the incredible way my colleagues at work have
rallied round and offered their unconditional support.
All of this makes me realise just what a lucky boy I’ve
been.
In spite of
everything; my memory lapses, the strange other glitches
to my bodily functions, I didn’t hate the situation I’ve
found myself in. Although in the past I’d be over the
incontinence by now, the thick nappies were offering
comfort and security, which I found not in the least bit
annoying.
However, it
seemed I was reappraising my situation and the
forthcoming appointment with the doctor didn’t scare me
as much as before. This time, I was more prepared and
had a lot I wanted to say and hopefully find answers to
some of my questions/problems.
On my last visit
we left it at the point of why my brain wasn’t sending
the correct signals to my bladder... I think my
‘problems’ had escalated considerably since then,
although that particular one still continued.
#
At 6pm exactly
with a huge friendly smile Dr Laura Ames invited me into
her office.
“Ah Anthony,
great to see you again, glad you could make it. How are
you?”
In truth, and
despite my readiness to ask questions, I’d been a bit
anxious all day. In fact, so bad had it got that I’d
needed my nappy changed three times at work and could
feel the dampness rising again. The problem was,
throughout the day, mum’s prediction of a storm front
coming our way had been threatening since early morning
and now I could hear distant rumbling.
Although I
preferred to wear shorts, today I’d worn my new long
green trousers (the ones I’d bought at the Outlet),
which didn’t hide the padding half as well.
Unfortunately, dad had not so subtly suggested that the
doctor needed to see an eighteen year-old and not a
school boy. He’d been gentle with his recommendation but
as usual, I did as suggested and wore what he thought
more appropriate.
It hadn’t
occurred to me until he mentioned it that I did feel a
lot younger when wearing shorts and although I often
bemoaned the fact of being treated as a kid, at times I
actually liked the response. Stupid I know but blame dad
cos he set me off. So, this means I have even more to
discuss with the doctor now.
#
The session
started with small talk and she asked me about any
developments. As I answered her questions the room was
getting ominously darker as the storm clouds gathered
and I began to wonder if it was all in my imagination or
actually happening.
In what appeared
to be only moments the storm was crashing around us and
the thunder drowned out my voice...
~~~~~ ~~~~~ ~~~~~~
~~~~~ ~~~~~~
~~~~~~
~
That was all I
remember until I was gently being shaken by Doctor Ames.
“Come on
Anthony, wake up. Come on back... come on... ah... there
you are.”
I opened my eyes
and though disorientated, realised I was sucking on my
thumb and was absolutely soaked. I lay out on the couch
and tried to get my bearings wondering why the doctor
was encouraging me to wake up.
Doctor Ames had
a hold of my hand and was gently soothing my confusion.
Once she thought I was compos mentis her smile grew
bigger and she seemed relieved to have me back.
“Well Anthony,
the last fifty minutes or so proved very interesting.”
Now I was awake
and aware I suddenly felt guilty because I could feel my
soaked nappy and hoped that I’d only wet it. I gave a
tentative wiggle and inhaled deeply, neither of these
actions, to my relief, indicated a messy nappy.
“I’m afraid that
the storm has left its trademark effect and you are
sodden. And, as your mum reported, you stood at the
window throughout it mewling, sucking your thumb,
filling your protection and appearing to be... totally
disconnected from the moment.”
She wasn’t
coating what she saw in psychobabble just telling me
exactly how it was. So, now she’d witnessed my problem
(or one of them) what was her solution?
“Firstly, do you
need to go and change?” Her question was full of
understanding and concern. “As you know from last time,
I have some Tena pull-ups if they’d be OK?”
I hated wearing
a soaked nappy for too long and, if what she’d said was
true, then I’d been in this one for about an hour.
“I’ve called
your mother and she’ll be here soon... so if you prefer
to wait.”
I knew I’d used
all my clean nappies at work and my backpack had a
plastic bag full of wet ones so didn’t have any spare.
Mum I knew would bring some fresh and more substantial
nappies than the Tena so said I’d wait, if that was OK
with her. She said that was fine.
I sat on the
couch swamped by the squishy fabric and tried not to
move. I was only grateful for the plastic pants which
were holding back any chance of leakage but didn’t know
for how long.
The fact that
she’d witnessed what happened I thought would mean
everything would be explained. However, I did wonder why
she hadn’t intervened and pull me from my hypnotic
stance or try to get me to do something else. Had she
simply merely watched?
Meanwhile, as we
waited for mum Doctor Ames told me that she’d tried my
dad first, seeing as he was in the same building but
unfortunately, he was at a meeting in another town so
couldn’t come and pick me up. When mum heard about what
had happened she insisted on coming and ‘sorting me
out’, which I gather was what the doctor hoped as
she wanted to talk to one or both my parents as well as
me.
She asked what I
thought about my co-workers gathering around and
helping. I said that at first I was nervous and couldn’t
believe what they were doing but I’m used to it now.
She nodded and
wrote something down on her note pad then wondered if
any other teenage boy with my ‘problem’ would have
agreed to such an operation in his workplace. I had to
agree that I doubted that would happen but I thought my
team were special and I was lucky to have them.
She made further
notes as I gushed about how grateful I was to be working
in such an environment.
There was
something about that question that made me think there
was probably a different answer but it had passed me by.
I know this (and excuse me if this sounds silly) but I
felt a shiver run down my back and a sort of mental
‘ping’ go off in my head... you know like when your
microwave meal is ready... but I ignored it. I even
ignored the sudden spurt of pee as I added to the
fullness of my already squishy padding.
We chatted about
why I thought that way and, as I suddenly got the
citrusy tang again, so mentioned about the taste of
orange I was experiencing.
I wondered about
the loss of time, which she’d witnessed and how thankful
I was to be wearing a nappy to soak up my incontinence
and jokingly added the fact that so far I hadn’t
disgraced myself all over her office.
“You’ve come to
rely on your nappies haven’t you?” She smiled her
question.
I shrugged but
she was correct. “When I witnessed the strike, and all
this began... again... I left a huge puddle on my
bedroom floor. I think that was more embarrassing
then wearing a bit of padding...”
“But it’s not
just a ‘bit of padding’ is it?” She interrupted. “You
have to wear thick padding and vinyl pants all the time.
Doesn’t that get... annoying?”
There was that
‘ping’ again but I didn’t get the reference.
I shrugged again
because in reality it didn’t bother me... padding
successfully stopped anyone else knowing I had a
problem. Well, that was until the office now knew... but
that was my own doing even though some had already
suspected as much. But ‘no’ it was never annoying just a
sartorial fact – I needed them.
She made further
notes but I did notice a small recording devise on the
table and wondered if she’d captured my ‘mewling’. I
wondered what I sounded like but thought it sounded
silly to ask to listen to myself in such a state.
Now she’d
observed my storm reaction for herself I think it had
given her a lot to digest. However, as I had so many
other concerns I wanted to talk about put my soaked
nappy to the back of my mind and tried to get everything
else out as quickly as I could. Unexpectedly, I found it
great to talk about the things that had happened and my
thoughts surrounding them.
Once started I
wondered why I’d been so anxious... this was turning out
great. I was enjoying this ‘therapy thing’.
#
Just before
seven o’clock mum bustled in carrying what I recognised
as my nappy bag. She hugged and patted my bottom and
then hugged Doctor Laura in a friendly greeting.
“Sorry you had
to experience that... he does tend to pee a lot.” Was
mum’s opening line to Laura.
“Well no harm
done. I’m sure Anthony is keen to change out of...”
“Oh yes, yes off
course... let’s sort you out shall we?”
I was pointed
towards the bathroom I used the on the last appointment.
Thankfully this time mum, now armed with her well
provisioned bag, came to help me out.
“Does he always
need assistance?” Doctor Ames queried.
“Ermmmm,” mum
sounded wary, “We just find it quicker and easier if I’m
there.”
Mum answered
whilst escorting me in and closed the door.
“Have you had to
leave Jenny alone?” I asked concerned once the door was
shut.
Mum took a deep
breath before answering as if she was thinking something
over in her head.
“No sweetie,
she’s at a friend’s doing a school project together.”
She answered cheerily.
“Oh, sorry to
drag you out in this weather.”
“The storm’s
passed; it’s now quite fresh outside, which is a
bonus...”
We kept up this
small talk all the way through the operation and in the
end I was surprised to see she’d fluffed out a large
colourful disposable, not unlike the one Deidre had me
wear.
“Mum, where did
you get this?” I asked in surprise but I’m sure my
obvious pleasure was, well, obvious.
“Never you mind.
I took on board the fact that nappies might be fun
so... here you are... a fun nappy... hope you like it”
To be honest I
was surprised on two counts. One; the disposable had
colourful little cartoon dinosaurs printed all over it.
And secondly; how had she been able to find such a thing
so quickly? However, neither of these
points mattered as the crinkle, as she unfolded them and
jigged them about to open them up and fluff them out,
made me smile like a two year old getting a huge ice
cream.
“You know... you
had some vinyl pants as a baby like these... all bright
colours and jolly...” Her voice trailed off as I think
she realised it perhaps wasn’t a comparison best to be
making.
There were many
times when mum could be wise and unmovable but there
were also times, like now, where she seemed innocent and
vulnerable. Such openness always took me by surprise...
though made me love her all the more.
Once it was
taped in place she handed me a pair of shiny white
plastic pants and a pair of shorts from amongst the
stuff she’d brought. So whilst mum cleaned the place up,
I slipped into them. I felt restored straight away but
really didn’t want to hide the colourful print on the
disposable with the plastic cover. Then again, thought
I’d leave that discussion for another time.
#
We emerged to
find Doctor Laura sitting waiting for us; obviously the
session hadn’t finished just yet. However, the bulge
under my shorts (and the soft rustling as I moved) was
obvious so she knew I had substantial protection there.
Still, I was glad to be wearing the new colourful
disposable and pleased that the doctor didn’t know about
its design. I suddenly wondered if she would think worse
of me because of it.
“All OK now?”
Doctor Laura beamed as we re-entered her office.
“Yes thanks.”
“Ahh shorts,”
she nodded in their direction, “I remember you said you
prefer them.”
I’m not sure if
they met with her approval but I was certainly glad to
be dry and wearing them.
“Yes,” I
answered with a smile and smoothing down the slight
bulge.
“And mum, does
she like to see you wear them?”
“Mum’s a mum...
she likes me in anything and everything. She’s always
very encouraging whatever I wear.” I added nonchalantly.
I saw both women
nodding but in different ways. The Doctor made a note.
“Now I’ve got
you both together I hope you don’t mind if I get your
take on each other.”
I saw mum
visibly wince and I immediately thought this might not
be a good idea but... we were here to sort things out
and if the doctor thought it was something she needed
then we should comply.
“Of course
Laura,” mum said being as helpful as possible, “but
we’ll have to make it quick because I have a fourteen
year-old at home alone.”
I knew mum was
lying because she’d just told me something different.
“Oh, from what
you’ve told me about Jenny I’m sure she’ll be just
fine.”
Doctor Laura
didn’t miss much.
“What would you
like to know?” Mum smiled her question.
“Well for
starters... how often is Anthony put in nappies?”
#
It wasn’t an
awkward question but I could see it had thrown mum a
bit. Doctor Ames had already had my version of this
question and I’d answered honestly yet mum seemed to be
having a little difficulty actually remembering the
whys, wherefores.
Where I could
remember I chipped in and had nothing but praise for the
way mum and my family supported me when I had these ‘bouts
of incontinence’ (as the doctor called them).
Although I knew
mum and Laura were ‘friends’ I was surprised at some of
the questions she asked. I would have thought,
considering she’d known her since I was seven, they’d
have talked about some of these things between
themselves in the past. She was drawing info from mum
who I noticed was desperate for the session to be over.
Despite being
free and uninhibited with my own answers I noticed mum
avoiding some of hers. This I thought was most unlike
her and wondered why she was being so evasive.
“Well thank you
both,” Doctor Ames eventually ended the appointment with
a flourish. “You’ve both been very helpful but, I would
like to see you again sometime soon Anthony if you can
manage it. In fact, shall we put it in the diary now?”
Oddly, despite
all that anxiety with the storm, I’d enjoyed the session
and hoped she had enough information to help, so I was
keen to come back. I booked a session for same time the
following Friday.
The ‘short’
conversation had lasted another hour so it was just
before 8pm when we left the office. Mum was quiet and
appeared to be in quite a rattled state as we drove
home.
I, on the other
hand, was pretty pleased with myself due to the fact I
was wearing a thick, comfy and colourful kiddie style
disposable... and still dry. The fun, colourful
disposable had cheered me up. Although I wasn’t down,
the fact I was wearing it had an effect but again had no
idea why. I just had a permanent grin on my face and
felt comfortable.
#
Mum had calmed
down quite a bit once we were home and the rest of the
family were there. We talked about the storm that had
happened and again I said I didn’t remember anything
about it but that the Doctor had observed it and found
my reaction ‘interesting’.
We all wondered
what that might mean but decided that no doubt
psychiatrists liked their own veil of secrecy if it was
something they didn’t understand.
We joked about
it and wondered what effect it would have had on her but
I said she didn’t seem in the least bit perturbed and
didn’t do anything, as far as I knew, to stop it. As we
talked about my soaked nappy I was going to mention the
colourful disposable I was wearing but noticed that the
smile on mum’s face was a little strained so changed the
subject.
After the meal
mum had busied herself doing the extra laundry (she had
more than enough fabric nappies to wash and dry) and
Jenny and I argued over what to watch on TV. Dad, as
usual, was engrossed behind a pile of folders and
papers, work never far away with him.
I hadn’t changed
out of what I was wearing so was still in my sort of
‘school uniform’, which I suppose led to my sister
telling me about a new lad in Year 8 at her school who
looked just like me. I was a bit weary of where she was
going, or what she’d say about a thirteen year-old who
was my ‘spittin’ image’, but she said all the
girls were going ‘bonkers’ over him. For some reason I
took his popularity as my own and felt pretty good about
myself.
#
When I did go to
bed mum came up as usual to bring new supplies and check
I was OK but it was my turn to ask what was troubling
her.
“Oh nothing for
you to worry about sweetie,” she dismissed my interest
but I wasn’t having that.
“MUM,” I put on
my sternest voice, “you can’t tell me that because I sat
and watched you with Doctor Ames and you didn’t seem
best pleased to say the least.”
She shrugged but
I knew there was something.
“Look, I’ll be
seeing her next Friday and I’ll ask her if you don’t
tell me now.” I was adamant mum needed to tell me her
worries like I told her mine.
She looked like
she didn’t want to burden me with her problems but at
last she spoke.
“Well love, it’s
like this,” she swallowed and took a deep breath. “The
way the questions were posed and my responses led me to
believe that she thinks I’m responsible for your, erm,
problem.”
I looked a bit
stunned. Firstly, I didn’t get that impression from the
questions I heard and secondly, how can mum be
responsible for me wetting my pants?
“Are you sure?”
Was all I came up with.
“No, not sure,
just the impression I got aaannnddd...” she drew out the
last word before answering, “if I’m honest... I did feel
a little guilty about buying you those.” She pointed to
my kiddie-style disposable.
“Why? I mean,
why would you feel guilty? They feel nice to wear
and...”
I saw the
expression on mum’s face change and knew that was
the point... they were pretty childish.
“She thinks that
I like to see you wearing nappies and that I enable you
to... oh... I don’t know... but I felt really ill at
ease in her office.”
I thought about
what she’d just said and although I didn’t get the same
impression from Doctor Ames the fact that mum thought
this was annoying because I believed mum had done, and
continues to do, everything for my benefit.
“Mum, I have a
problem which you and dad... and Jenny help me with. I’m
sure that now the doctor has seen what happens and how I
react when a storm comes she knows it’s nothing you do.
And these,” I felt the soft thickness of my disposable,
“are just fun... why should you feel guilty about
wanting me to have fun... they still do the job they’re
designed for...?”
“Ah sweetie
you’re right, I’m probably reading too much into it
because I always worry...”
“Mum, the
wetting’s the problem not what I wear. My colleagues at
work don’t think you’ve done anything wrong so why
should the doc... I mean she’s seen me peeing myself,
suck my thumb and make noises. She knows that the fact
you put me in a thick nappy stopped me flooding her
office. No, no, no... you’ve done all you can and I’m
grateful to you...” Then I had a different thought.
“Mum, do you feel guilty about me... at my age... you
know... not being more of a man?”
She sighed and I
thought we’d got to the crux of her feelings. Almost
immediately I wished I’d not asked the question because
I didn’t want the answer.
“Well sweetie I
do feel responsible for the number of times, as Laura
pointed out, I’ve resorted to putting you in nappies as
a solution to any anxiety you may have had.”
I was standing
now just wearing the disposable which unconsciously I
was filling though mum hadn’t yet noticed. I had that
weird shiver run through my body and once again had that
tangy taste in my mouth.
“... I just
wonder if it has somehow held you back in some way...”
I wasn’t sure
what to say because I was being engulfed in a warming
glow and my mind drifted off..........
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 18
It was the
strangest of sensations. I could see mum speaking but
that slow and pleasant warmth spread from my crotch to
engulf my entire body. In slow-motion my mind floated
back through the many times I’d worn protection. It was
eerie observing being put into nappies and being
delighted for the younger versions of me. This was
despite the fact that I could feel I was filling my own
disposable at the same time.
Even as I
watched those diminishing images my senses were alert to
the way mum wrapped me in a fresh nappy, the material
softly encasing my boyish parts and hugging my bottom.
The various styles of rubber and plastic pants that I
didn’t remember... I now noticed as the slide back
continued.
Mum was always
smiling, unflappable and full of sweet words, telling me
not to be troubled, everything would be alright, I
looked as cute as cute could be. There was an awful
lot of that type of emphasis and encouragement that I
wasn’t to worry... I wasn’t to worry... I
wasn’t to worry. The worry of wet pants quickly
transformed into a wet nappy, which was no worry at all.
It was the same
at eighteen, sixteen, twelve, ten, seven... as I
reversed through imagined time there was always that
praise, reassurance and love... and it was special... it
made me feel special. Even though no words were
said, I could ‘hear’ them echoing around in my head. And
even though these were extremely swift glimpses, they
were incredibly detailed.
I tumbled
further back and was suddenly brought to a dead halt by
the sound of thunder rushing from the front to the back
of my head. I was small and scared even though mum and
dad were there with me. Again my body was engulfed in
that hot flush and I knew I was filling the seat of my
pants. They were trying to soothe and reassure me but I
was too scared to listen and my soft cotton pyjamas were
becoming a total mess.
It must have
been my first experience of such a phenomenon, not
helped by the rolling noisy echo that reverberated down
the valley where we were camped. I had no concept of
thunder sounding like this. The only thing I did have
some idea about was that monsters created a ferocious
roar to scare kids. Each ear-splitting roar and rumble
making me fear the huge scary beast that must be
creating it.
Mum asked dad to
get a towel and after she stripped me out of the stinky
disaster and wiped away most of the mess, then wrapped
it around like a make-do nappy. I immediately began to
settle down but was still blubbing. I saw dad grab a
carton of juice and fit a straw, which he gave to mum to
see if I could be distracted by a cool drink. It worked
for a while.
“He’s shaking
like a leaf...” Mum said as she patted my towel covered
bottom.
“A very messy
leaf.” Dad humorously mumbled half to himself.
“He’ll be over
it soon.”
I observed all
this ‘history’ in a micro-second as another loud crash
set the three year-old me off once again. I’d never been
so scared, it was a totally new experience and I was
terrified, not just for myself but also how that
imagined creature would overwhelm my parents.
I finished the
drink but the rumbling down the valley continued. Mum
held me tightly and kept up her reassuring stroking and
petting of my towelled bottom. However, the juice and
any other fluid in my frightened body were seeping into
the towel so that was also getting rapidly soaked.
“I think we’ll
need another towel pretty soon.”
“OK, will this
yellow one do?” Dad was sorting through the pre-packed
cases.
“Might be a good
idea but I’ll only change him when he settles down.
Ssshhhuussshh sweetheart, there’s nothing to be scared
of... mummy and daddy are here... Ssshhhsss...”
Whilst still
trying to placate my young mind she manoeuvred my thumb
between my lips and instantly started to pacify myself.
She reassured and cooed in my ear, whilst dad wondered
aloud if they hadn’t let me out of nappies too soon. I
think they must have agreed on that point because I was
changed into another towel as a make-do nappy.
Eventually I
must have dropped off.
Still held in
mum’s protective arms my head ached... no... more than
ached it felt painful... there was turmoil, fear,
thunder and blackness... but then nothing.
I was completely
disorientated when I came round it was daylight and I
was back home. I had no memory of us packing up and
leaving the campsite but was still trembling a little
and aware of the thick wet towel between my legs.
Every night from
then on, I wore a nappy, which was just as well seeing
as how, for quite a while after that frightening
experience, I had regular nightly accidents.
However,
although I saw everything so clearly, or so I thought,
my memory didn’t go any further back and I was both
scared and numb.
#
“Anthony,
Anthony are you OK sweetie?”
Mum looked
worried as I came back from my revealing mental journey.
“Sweetie you’re
soaked,” she tried to cheer me up because I apparently
looked ‘weird’. “Your dinosaur chums look desperate to
find dry land.” She was stroking my colourful padding.
Mum had put me
in this disposable so was she treating me as a little
kid now?
Why this thought
entered my head I don’t know but she needn’t have
worried. It had served its purpose because despite the
amount I’d peed there were no leaks. However, some of
the dinosaurs looked a bit the worse for wear.
As my padding
was still warm it confirmed all that I’d conjured up in
that weird and unwarranted flashback had happened in
mere seconds.
“Let’s get you
into a fresh one for the night shall we?”
It wasn’t a
question but I wasn’t sure how to react after all I’d
just ‘witnessed’. I mean, there wasn’t a moment in that
memory when wearing a nappy I wasn’t content to do so.
Yet there also wasn’t a moment in that brief excursion
into my past, where I wore my normal underpants.
Obviously I had, and for the majority of time, though it
simply didn’t register in that weird scrutiny I’d just
endured.
I wasn’t sure
what my brain was telling me, or if indeed it was trying
to tell me anything, all I seemed to get from that slip
into a time-warp was, whenever I needed a nappy I was
grateful to be put in one.
Conversely, I
kept telling myself you’re eighteen... you’re
eighteen... yet... and yet... I just didn’t feel
that mattered. My age was of absolutely no consequence
because all that was significant ended up to be
something I had no control over. I surmised that as the
flashback stopped at the tent in France that must have
been the start of all my problems.
However, as mum
ripped away the tapes and let the disposable fall
heavily to my bedroom floor I wondered if I was the one
making the ‘old problem’ real. I mean, there was no
thunder or anxiety now but I had just completely sodden
my ‘Dino disposable’ and mum was about to put me in a
clean and dry fluffy piece of fleecy material. It was
something I looked forward to without thinking just what
it meant.
I loved the way
mum was so careful, so upbeat, so loving. I couldn’t
remember her once being upset that I needed a nappy.
Though it meant more laundry, more supervision, more
work on her part she never complained. Her solution to a
wet boy, and one I never disagreed with, a nappy was a
quick and easy fix. Even now, at eighteen, mum’s the one
who tends to my ‘problem’ and I’ve always enjoyed the
attention.
#
Up until we’d
talked with Doctor Ames neither of us had felt any guilt
about what we did to prevent wet pants. The psychiatrist
hadn’t been caustic, clever or critical, merely asked
alternative questions, which surprisingly had made us
both think differently. Now I was looking at things from
an altered point of view I could see how mum might have
thought the doctor was blaming her.
I reasoned that
was all very well and good but why was I having gaps in
my memory? Why had I written poems I had no knowledge
of? Why did I taste orange? Why had the lightning
strike...?
Why? Why?
Why? Doctor Ames had
certainly got into both mine and mum’s heads.
As mum left my
room, but now with a fresh thick nappy firmly pinned on,
I searched for the plastic pants I wanted to wear. There
it was – I WANTED TO WEAR. I could so easily have
rummaged through my underwear drawer and found a pair of
pants or shorts or something to cover it up (well maybe
only slightly) but I didn’t, I went straight to my pile
of plastic pants. I felt safer knowing my nappy was
secured behind a leak-proof guard and no other thought
entered my head.
However, I
searched through my underpants and inspected them. I
wasn’t sure why because I knew I had mainly
tighty-whities but also a few pairs of colourful spandex
style trunks, a couple of dark blue boxers and loads of
stuff from my childhood I’d never got around to throwing
out. It all just lay in the drawer for when I was over
my wetting spell. They hadn’t been disturbed for a
couple of weeks or so now, whilst the heap of fabric
nappies grew as did the packs of disposables.
I felt the pile
of thick terry nappies, they were everywhere, big and
cumbersome but I enjoyed going to sleep with them
encased in vinyl knowing I was so well protected. The
disposables - both the Abena and mum’s latest childish
(but oh so cute) Dinosaur ones - were likewise fantastic
and I loved wearing them all.
In the past,
when I wet from being anxious or because of a storm, I
knew that I’d be back in briefs as soon as I stopped
soaking my pants either at night or during the day.
However, for the moment at least, that seemed a target
too far. What’s peculiar this time than in the past, the
lightning strike had affected me mentally somehow and,
if I wanted to get back to any kind of normality, where
my workmates didn’t need to change my dripping nappies,
or indeed have need for nappies, I had to find that
explanation and deal with it. However, there was a
problem – and it had taken talking to the psychiatrist
to realise just how much this was a fact, I didn’t
mind the current fuss.
#
There have been
moments since the strike when I obviously know I’ve had
no control yet still had the illusion I had. There have
also been times when I was outwardly horrified as to
what was happening (like peeing in front of our
neighbour on the way to the seaside) but quickly came to
terms with it. The problem I had now was that Doctor
Laura had gently and expertly probed deeply enough for
me to deliberate on the things I’d just accepted. Like;
why had I not mastered pinning on a nappy? Why had I
accepted the workforce had a place in my nappy change
regime and why was I so happy to be wearing nappies?
There was
absolutely no reason why, if needed, I couldn’t pin
myself into a fabric nappy. I’d found it difficult to
begin with and had leaked a bit the few times I’d tried
but that was no excuse to stop trying and letting mum
take on total responsibility for any change. The trouble
was, I’m used to it being done that way and I like it.
It doesn’t hold any embarrassment to the proceedings
just because I’m eighteen. I get the impression from the
good doctor that it should worry me and should be
embarrassed that mum still has that responsibility. I’m
not.
In fact, apart
from once or twice getting annoyed at waitresses asking
if I wanted the Children’s Menu in a restaurant, I’m
fairly easy-going about how I appear to others. When I
think about it, I even think my annoyance is a bit of an
act because I don’t really mind. I might have felt I
‘should’ say something but didn’t need to...
Oh Doctor
Laura... you’ve got me thinking I might also be a fraud.
Then I think, I
can’t be a fraud, I let my workmates change my wet
nappies... that’s hardly a fraudulent thing to do... but
then I can almost hear her asking the question “Why
do you let them?”
The arguments in
my head continue as I reason it’s the weather that makes
me wet. What did Mrs Dewhurst say her daughter suffered
from... biometeorology... surely that’s not made
up? However, I am wetting all the time now so there must
be something other than that causing my trouble. I just
haven’t found out what yet.
#
I’d been
standing at the window looking out but whatever was
going on out there was of no consequence compared with
what was going on in my head. I was wearing a t-shirt, a
thick nappy and plastic pants, exactly as mum left me a
few... I looked at the clock... over two hours ago.
I sighed and
looked in the mirror and was trying to decide something
about that guy looking back at me. He looked the same
and dressed the same as me... but I was beginning to
have doubts about just how grown up that eighteen year
old was. I was dressed as a toddler and when I thought
about it, I spent quite a bit of my life wearing just
this outfit. It had never bothered me because I never
thought, until now, just what a juvenile outfit it was.
My solution was to simply pull up some shorts and I was
ready to go.
I was a kid.
I might have
moments of being an adult, or thinking I’m an adult, but
there was absolutely no doubt, the majority of the time
I looked like a kid.
A shiver of
recognition ran down my back and I wondered if the
reflection had come to the same conclusion?
#
Brrr-brrr, brrr-brrr, brrr-brrr....
Mary Turner
picked up her mobile as she sorted through a batch of
freshly cleaned nappies she’d just pulled from the
drier.
“Hello.”
“Yes, hello
Mary it’s Laura, Laura Ames.”
“Yes Laura,”
she answered suspiciously, “what can I do for you?”
“First, let
me thank you for coming in today... I think it helped me
understand Anthony’s situation a little better.”
“Ohh, erm, in
what way?” She paused from folding the large soft cotton
squares.
“Well Mary,
he’s such a sweet boy. Most teenagers I meet are
absolute terrors so it’s nice to talk with someone who
doesn’t want to kill their parents or...” She suddenly
realised she was talking too much. “Anyway, what I’m
really calling for is something I forgot to ask both of
you...”
“Which is?”
“When did
Anthony last see a GP.... or have a medical... or a full
examination?”
Mary had to
think hard because he hadn’t actually been to their GP
except for the usual childhood inoculations.
“Erm, not for
quite some time, uumm, there’s nothing wrong is there?”
Mary was suddenly concerned.
“Well, I’ve
been going over my recent notes and those from when he
was seven when I first saw him. Some things seem a
little baffling...”
“In what
way?” She wasn’t sure if this was worrying or the doctor
just being a bit guarded.
“Well, my
observations then...” Laura decided, for the moment at
least, against raising her doubts with her patient’s
mother. “Look... let’s do some tests before we get too
bogged down in speculation.”
“Good
heavens,” anxiety crept into Mary’s voice, “what do you
think needs to happen?”
“Well, if
it’s OK with you, I’d like to do a couple of
neurological tests and, erm, stuff.”
“Oh god, this
sounds serious?”
Although the
psychiatrist thought there was more to Anthony’s problem
than she was letting on... she didn’t want to exacerbate
the situation so played it down.
“No Mary,
this is just to rule out a few things... and it also
might explain why Anthony has so many bouts of
incontinence. It could be just some kind of hormonal
imbalance but... I’d like to check. To be honest, I was
hoping your GP would have picked up on that by now but,
if he hasn’t seen your son...”
Although this
sounded like an accusation of some kind Mary calmed down
thanks to the lack of an immediate threat to her son’s
well-being. Although, now something had been said she’d
some thoughts herself.
“OK, Tom’s
private health insurance covers the family so, how
quickly can you organise this... test?”
“Well, I have
a friend at the BUPA hospital who deals with this so,
once I get your OK, I’ll start the ball rolling.”
“Will Anthony
need any referral from his GP?”
“It wouldn’t
harm but I think we can arrange this privately if you
prefer.”
“Look, are
you sure there’s not something I should be aware of?”
“Mary, if
there was I would tell you... these are only tests...”
Mary thought
for a moment and then asked anxiously.
“But you’ve
phoned me at home and...”
The doctor
recognised the high level of apprehension in Mary’s
voice and knew she’d need to calm her further.
“Well, you
looked pretty fed up when you left the office and I got
the impression you thought I was blaming you for
Anthony’s problem.”
“Erm.”
“Well, I
think from all you’ve both said that whatever is ailing
Anthony it stems from his scary camping trip to
France... so... if there is anything else you can
remember from that trip, any small detail, please let me
know as it may just be the pointer we need.”
“Oh, OK.”
“Great, then
you’re OK with me having a word with my colleague and
getting the ball rolling?”
“Absolutely... I’ll check with Tom’s insurance... but
I’m sure we’re covered.”
“Fine, good,
I’ll do that then. Also Mary, don’t worry, Anthony’s a
fine lad and a credit to you and Tom... I wish all my
patients were as affable as he is.”
“Thanks
Laura, if that’s all... good night.”
“Good night
Mary I’ll be in touch as soon as I have can sort
something out.”
“Bye then.”
“Bye.”
Mary patted
the pile she’d expertly folded throughout the
conversation.
However, once
the phone call was over she sat down and began to think.
Anthony’s own questioning about that camping holiday had
made her review the trip herself. There was something
else that happened at the campsite, something she’d all
but forgotten about because it didn’t appear relevant.
It seemed such a minor thing but...
# # #
...to be
continued
Part 19
I woke up to
find Jenny standing over me and asking if I was OK. I
was just emerging from a deep dream where mum and I were
sat on a bench looking out to sea with a storm noisily
crashing around us. Incredibly, we were both sat
crossed-legged because we thought if our feet didn’t
touch the ground then the lightning couldn’t strike us.
We were also cowered under a large colourful golfing
umbrella with a metal spike... but that seemed quite
normal.
I felt my
shoulder being shaken.
“Ant, Ant,
are you OK?” Jen sounded alarmed and concerned.
“Mmm... errr,
whattt, ummm....”
“You’re making a
lot of noise... more than usual anyway.”
It took me a few
seconds to determine I was no longer in my dream where I
was huddled up close to mum and crying because I was
scared of the thunder.
“Oh, erm, sorry
Jen, I, er, er...”
“You sounded
really frightened. I’ve never heard you making such...”
I wasn’t
actually crying like I was in the dream but could feel
my heart racing so knew I was troubled about something.
“I was in the
middle of a storm. I, errruuuummm...”
It was taking me
a little while to get myself under control but at least
now I was awake Jen didn’t look so panicked. However, I
still wasn’t sure what was going on except I could feel
my nappy was sodden but that wasn’t unusual first thing
in the morning. It hadn’t occurred to me that the main
light was on and it was still night. I looked at the
bedside clock, the clear blue numbers indicated it was
still only 2.13, for some reason that particular time
made me shiver and I felt another spurt of pee enter my
soaked padding.
I saw Jen shrug
her shoulders waiting for me to say something and as I
became more aware of my circumstances. “What type of
noise?”
“I don’t know...
I was just coming back from the loo and you... well...
it just seemed you were really scared of something. Not
like the usual noises you make,” she added with a quick
smile.
“I don’t make
noises.” I said indignantly.
“Yer, sure, Mr
Silent Sleeper you ain’t.” She said sarcastically and
toddled back to her own room.
She left me
alone and after a couple of minutes I threw back the
sheet and checked in case I’d leaked. As usual, all was
safely contained but I didn’t want to return to sleep
knowing I had a sopping wet nappy so waddled to the
dresser and took out some wipes. The new package of Dino
disposables lay open by the side of the wardrobe.
I decided wipes
wouldn’t be enough so grabbed one of my wonderful,
cheery disposables and headed to the bathroom. I turned
on the main light to checked myself. The plastic pants
were ok but the white thick fabric underneath was
saturated. It’s strange that since mum had bought these
extra thick night time nappies (as she’d called them) I
had used them to their fullest and became quite grateful
they could take the excess liquid I seemed to produce.
However, the pins were fiddly so no wonder I was always
pleased when someone else did my change. Despite this
drawback, I managed and threw the soaked thing into the
laundry basket (the one reserved only for my stuff) and
sponged myself down with warm water instead of the cold
wet-wipes mum often used.
#
Once cleaned up
properly, I applied lotion and powder, slipped into a
nice thick Dinosaur nappy and felt pretty good that at
least for the rest of the night I’d be dry. I decided
that a pair of clear vinyl pants should then be enough
to keep me safe for what remained of the night.
As I waddled
back mum was standing on the landing in her nightie
obviously awaken by my various noises.
“Is everything
alright Anthony?” Mum looked tired and drawn but perhaps
anyone would at two-thirty in the morning.
“Fine mum,” I
forced a smile, “just needed a change.”
She gave a small
smile as she checked out my cheerful disposable, perhaps
knowing how much I enjoyed wearing them.
“Night then
love... but I do have something I need to chat to you
about in the morning.”
“Do you want to
talk now?”
“No sweetie it
can wait. You get back to sleep and we’ll chat later.”
I shrugged. “OK,
night mum.” I watched mum return to her and dad’s room
before I waddled back to my own. The soft rustling that
accompanied each movement made me smile.
Back in my
bedroom I slipped effortlessly under the covers, the new
disposable giving me a pleasant crinkle as I settled
down. I ran my hand over the soft but welcoming fabric
completely forgetting the need for plastic pants. I
quickly fell asleep stroking the front, enjoying the
impressive bulge and wondering what mum needed to chat
about.
My dream was of
me in exactly the same place as I was before Jen woke me
up, only this time I was sat on a bench on my own. I was
wearing just the Dino disposable because the weather was
hot and the people as they passed nodded and smiled and
I felt at peace with the world. The thing was I knew I
wasn’t eighteen any more.
Eventually, I
joined in with a group of small kids who were playing
down on the beach, the beach me and mum had visited, and
set about building sandcastles. Judging by the remarks
and looks I was getting, jovial though they were, I knew
I was only a toddler to their eyes... but it didn’t
worry me. I giggled and pulled at the sand to cover my
legs and just left the dinosaurs on display because we’d
made a game... it made no sense but these cartoon
creatures somehow played an important part.
We were all
having a fantastic time - shouting, screeching and
laughing. It was fun.
#
It was just
after nine when I woke up. Mum had come into my bedroom
and told me that breakfast would be on the table in ten
minutes. With the smell of bacon already wafting up from
the kitchen she knew I would never miss a Saturday
morning fry-up.
I flipped my
legs from under the cover and was happy to see I was
still dry, those little dinosaurs still cheerily chasing
each other around the bulging fabric. Deciding to wear
them for the rest of the day (or until they were too
soggy) I grabbed a pair of clear vinyl pants off the
dresser and pulled them up, followed by a pair of white
polyester gym shorts and headed downstairs.
Dad and Jenny
were already dressed both looked like they had made
arrangements for a trip out somewhere and wondered if
I’d missed some important plans.
“Going anywhere
nice?” I asked as I took my seat next to Jen.
Mum was plating
up the bacon and eggs. I noticed that she’d also got
scrambled egg on toast for Jen, because she kept an eye
on her youthful, but fast maturing figure.
“Dad’s got a
meeting in Manchester later this morning so I’ve cadged
a lift for me and Claire to go over and do a bit of
shopping.”
“Is Claire
coming here?” I liked Claire she was very funny and the
only one of Jenny’s friends I could actually speak to
without feeling I was being judged. Not that her other
friends said much, it was more a feeling and the odd
surreptitious look that made me uncomfortable around
most of them.
“No, we’re
picking her up on the way... but we’ll get the train
back as dad doesn’t know what time he’ll finish.”
Mum slid the
plates in front of us all. “You be careful young lady
and make sure you’ve got your phone... I want regular
texts please.”
“Yes mum.”
Like all teenagers she was in despair over the attention
parents had over her movements.
“Yes well, let
me know what train you’re on...”
“Yes mum,” she
shrugged in annoyance but really knew mum was looking
out for her and wasn’t really angry.
“That goes for
you as well,” she nodded towards dad. “Let me know when
we can expect you back.”
“Yes mum,” Dad
did a comic impression of Jen and we all laughed.
“That just
leaves me and you sweetie, have you got any plans?”
“No not really.
I messaged Peter last night and he said he might come
over this afternoon but wasn’t sure.”
The rest of the
meal past with similar inconsequential chat.
#
When they’d left
and it was just me and mum I could tell something was
disturbing her because of the way she looked at me.
Finally, as she finished washing up and I dried the
dishes she asked me to sit down as she had something to
talk to me about.
“Last night
Laura Ames called.”
I nodded but
said nothing.
“She said she’d
been reviewing your case from when she first saw you at
seven... and... compared them with what she knew now.”
I could see mum
was getting a bit uncomfortable.
“She didn’t
accuse you of being the reason I wet did she because
that’s...”
“No, no, erm,
nothing like that... she, er, um, wants to do some
tests.”
“What kind of
tests?” I asked suspiciously.
Those stupid
ink-blot cards immediately sprung to mind, which I’d
always thought were stupid and not very scientific way
of gauging people’s innermost thoughts.
Mum was reticent
to say anything further but obviously, now she’d started
the conversation couldn’t leave it there.
“She wants to
test the functions of your brain... she wants to give it
a scan.”
I was a bit slow
on the uptake. “What do you mean... a scan?”
“I think she
thinks there is more than just a psychological reason
for your problem.” Mum looked pained at saying this.
Not only that
but it all sounded serious and a cold shiver ran down my
back, immediately followed by a hot flush into the
disposable.
#
I sat slightly
numb (and wet) as mum tried to placate my worries.
“She said it
might be some kind of hormonal imbalance... or
something...”
“But she wants
to wire me up?” I asked incredulously.
“I think it’s
more about ruling certain things out rather than
anything else... and...”
I didn’t like
the sound of that AND.
“... there’s
something else about when you were a toddler and we were
on holiday in France all those years ago...”
Mum looked
uneasy... and why had she changed the subject?
“You mean when I
got scared of the thunder storm.” I knew what she meant
but certain aspects of that trip were forgotten, well by
me at least.
“Yes love...”
she paused before continuing. “This is awkward but...
with the storm the whole thing was pretty scary for you
but we eventually managed to get you off to sleep and we
thought that was all fine.”
She came and sat
down beside me and held my hand.
“With you asking
about it, and Laura mentioning it, I’ve been forced to
relive something else that happened that night that I
really hadn’t given much thought to for all these
years... and now I feel so guilty for not knowing...”
I could see mum
was struggling with an explanation of some kind but I
didn’t want to interrupt even though my stomach was in
knots wondering what this huge ‘guilty thing’ was.
“With the storm
came a great deal of rain and because we were camped
near the river, the management of the campsite warned us
that the levels could rise considerably and advised
everyone nearby to move to higher ground.”
She looked at me
still with that pained expression on her face.
“We’d already
packed quite a bit of our equipment in the car so dad
thought we might as well pack everything and, with the
prospect of flooding, get away from that valley and
start the journey home early.”
#
“Mum, what’s the
problem, why are you still feeling guilty over something
that happened...” I mentally counted backwards, “fifteen
years ago?”
“Well, as I
said, you were fast asleep and I was so grateful you
didn’t have to worry about all the panic going on around
us because folk started evacuating the area... and
moving and such... we were just happy you were out for
the count.”
“Mum, just tell
me... I...” I was annoyed because I suddenly felt my bum
hole offer no resistance to a silent fart and the threat
of worse but I didn’t want her to not finish her story.
“I was carrying
you to the car, to fasten you into your booster seat and
have you safely ensconced in the dry and out of the way
so we could finish the packing. When, as I grabbed the
handle, a huge gust of wind caught hold and blew it wide
open. It hit me still carrying you, and sent me for
six.”
I looked to her
to wonder why this was such a catastrophe. I saw her
unconsciously rubbing her arm.
“I got quite a
whack and had a bruised arm for ages but I thought my
body had protected you because you slept right through
it.”
“So?”
“Well
sweetheart, you slept all the way from the campsite to
Calais...” I looked at her wondering what she was
insinuating. “We were just grateful you were sleeping
even if it was for such a long time. We reasoned that
your fear of the storm had taken it out of you and...”
“Mum, do you
think I was injured?”
She nodded
guiltily. “Yes sweetheart. We were young and I didn’t
know any better but I fear you may well have also been
hit by that flying door and I hadn’t noticed.”
She had tears in
her eyes now and I felt my nappy rapidly filling with
extra pee and poop... I was shaking and feeling like a
three year old because I didn’t know what to say or do.
“Last night I
discussed the possibilities with your father, who knew
nothing about any of that other than I got a bruise from
somewhere. Because you were asleep for so long he
suggested there was a chance you might have actually
have been concussed or something so to call Laura back
and get her professional opinion. I did and she
suggested... a full scan.”
I burst in to
tears.
“Oh sweetie,
don’t be scared it’s not painful it’s...” She wasn’t
sure what it was but anyway, I wasn’t listening. All I
was aware of was the fact I felt helpless because of the
full disposable that clung to my groin. It was like I
was three all over again and needed someone to come and
change me. My anxiety level maxed out and I could hear a
mewling sound and noticed my thumb in my mouth.
#
It only lasted a
few seconds but that feeling of being totally helpless
had to have been one of the strangest experiences I’d
ever had... and I’d been having a few
of them recently. Even though sitting down I could feel
the weight and mess splurging around. Mum was trying to
calm my sudden dissolve into tears though she must have
thought the idea of having a scan was the reason. I
don’t think it was because for a brief moment my mind
had gone blank and a pain had shot through my head like
I’d never experienced before.
I sat with mum
for a few minutes, whilst she tried her best to reassure
me once again that all was well and I had nothing to
fear because mummy was here. I was grateful to
her hand that slowly stroked my hair and hugged me at
the same time.
“OK love, I
think we’d better get you into something...”
“Sorry mum, I
don’t know what happened.” I softly spoke into her bosom
where my head was nestling.
“Not to worry
love, it’s a strange time and I fear I might have
been...”
Again she didn’t
finish her sentence but she held my hand and guided me
back up to my room. The mess in my nappy reminding me
with each step how thankful I was to have been wearing
such good protection.
#
I came back from
the shower clean and refreshed and feeling a lot better.
I’d had time to think about the proposed neurological
tests and decided, after what mum had revealed, it
might be better than the psyche evaluation. Of course
mum was waiting for me as I continued to towel dry my
hair but for the first time in ages she hadn’t got
anything laid out and ready.
“Anthony love,
erm, you’ve had quite a lot to take in and I’m wondering
if you’d prefer to wear something, ummm, different
today. Something less, erm, protective.... you know...
something... like you wore when we went to the coast.”
I hadn’t clocked
that was why she was standing by the dresser with the
underwear drawer open. She fished in and produced a pair
of white briefs and one of the pairs of microfiber
trunks.
“Maybe one of
these?” She offered.
I could see, for
the first time, mum was feeling guilty about putting me
in nappies. She was desperate to make some kind of
amends and thought this small gesture was perhaps the
start.
She brought both
pairs of pants over to me and offered me the choice.
“Mum, it’s not
your fault that I wet and certainly not your fault that
I messed my...”
“But sweetie,
how do we know?” I mean, I might have thought I was
doing it for your own good but in fact, it was easier
because you’ve never once reacted against it.”
“Exactly mum,
you know it has never bothered me... well... I don’t
remember it ever having done... but the point is... I
feel safer knowing I’m well covered and these...” I said
offering up my white briefs, “offer no security at all.”
Mum shrugged but
I could tell she wasn’t happy. I don’t think it was with
me but she sighed as I went and pulled a large terry
cotton nappy (with the extra absorbent gusset), and said
I didn’t want to fight her but I needed this to feel
secure.
She sighed but
smiled and said that if I was sure.
“Let’s get it on
you then as we can all live without you parading around
with no clothes on.”
Strange that
apart from a towel loosely draped around my shoulders
I’d not realised I was completely naked throughout our
conversation.
It hadn’t
bothered either of us because I was used to mum seeing
me this way and ready to get me nicely fastened tightly
in to my welcoming padding.
The nappy was
thick and for the briefest of moments the towel I’d been
dressed in as a three year-old flashed into my head
followed by that awful pain.
“Uuurrggg,”
I shuddered, blacked out and fell to the floor.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 20
I was only
out for a few seconds but could see the fear in mum’s
eyes as she held me when I came round. There was still a
nagging ache in my head but not the spike I’d just
experienced. Mum and I sat on the floor, me wearing only
the thick nappy she’d just pinned on but she was shaking
more than I was.
Seeing how
distressed she was I tried to make light of it. “That
was new.” I just got hugged tighter.
“Mum, I’m OK
now... don’t worry, it’ll be alright.” Yes I know, I was
echoing the many times mum had said that to me.
Eventually I
gently wrestled myself free from her strong embrace and
saw just how badly the last few minutes had affected
her.
“What, what if
it is all my fault?” She swallowed hard thinking
what her actions might have caused. “I neglected to
check on my little baby boy... and look...”
The tears fell,
she looked old, defeated, lost... but I wanted to keep
mum’s spirits up like she had always done mine.
“Mum, don’t
blame yourself... wait until we’re sure... and then I
can blame you.” I gave her a sideways glance so she
knew I was joking.
She smiled and
ruffled my hair. “Are you sure you’re OK?”
“Well, let’s get
up and see.”
We struggled to
our feet but seemed able to stand without propping each
other up.
“Look, let me
get dressed and I’ll see you downstairs in a minute OK?”
I just wanted a
few minutes on my own to assess what had just happened
but without seeing mum looking so troubled.
“OK sweetheart,
if you’re sure you’re OK, I’ve got a call to make.”
She ambled from
my room but I knew she was going to try and contact
Doctor Ames. This last couple of days seemed to have
aged her and I didn’t like it. Not being her usual sunny
and effusive self was not how I wanted my mother to be.
For both our sakes we had to get to the bottom of all
this soon.
#
I looked out of
my bedroom window at the mid-morning scene and was
surprised to see how busy it all was. It’s easy to think
when it’s only me, or mum and me, then that’s the world,
but the truth is, life doesn’t stop just because you’re
having problems.
Now I was
attuned to what was going on outside the noise was most
welcome. Kids were playing in the street, riding bikes
or shuffling along on skateboards. A bunch of teenagers
were bouncing a ball and obviously heading for a game of
footy. A couple of women with toddlers were chatting by
the stump of what’s left of the lightning tree. Joggers
and pram pushers, dog walkers and deliverymen, young,
old, male and female - all people going about their
business with their own cares and worries but still ‘just
getting on with it’.
I ran my hand
over the soft fullness of my fresh nappy and realised I
was just getting on with it as well, only my getting on
with it included a thick, thick nappy, which perhaps
should have worried me but didn’t.
I was surprised
that the blackout had had such little effect on me. I
mean, of course it did have an effect; I did have a
headache but was more worried about mum than myself.
Thankfully, the soft cushion of padding had calmed and
soothed any anxiety like it had always done.
Mum was taking a
lot of grief on herself for something that happened all
those years ago and I’d seen the guilt etched in her
features. I’m sure dad and Jen had noticed but perhaps
were too polite to mention it. Although, maybe they had
and I just didn’t know it.
In fact, she was
blaming herself for everything that has happened to me
since then and, despite my joke, I couldn’t let her take
that much blame. Perhaps it was simply that I liked
nappies?
There, I’ve said
it.
I picked up a
pair of blue plastic pants and pulled them over the soft
fabric and then found the holiday pair of blue shorts
and a darker blue sweat shirt. I felt comfortable once
I’d fished a pair of blue trainers from under my bed and
checked myself out in the mirror. The guy looking back
may appear young but there was a hint of determination
that had not often been there.
I wasn’t sure
what I was determined about but not going...
I heard mum
answer a knock at the front door, which cut into my
train of thought, when she shouted up... “Peter’s here.”
“OK, coming.”
And I went down to greet my friend.
#
Pete and I have
been mates for over ten years. We were at school and in
the same class together and he’s probably the only
friend from school I still meet up with. He knows about
my wearing nappies because he used to sleep over fairly
regularly when we were kids. His mum and dad were going
through a divorce and he sought (and received) sanctuary
at our house. I think both his parents were glad he had
a friend he could rely on and get him away from their
constant bickering.
I’ve never tried
to hide the fact that sometimes (I don’t want you
thinking I was permanently attached to a nappy), if
things got on top of me (besides storms), I wet the bed.
I never hid it from him. To begin with he was shy
about it, then got curious and finally tried it
overnight when we were eleven. It was quite a thrill to
see someone else my age wearing a nappy but I didn’t
tell him that only alluded to the fact that I thought he
looked OK. I woke up wet, he didn’t and as far as I
know, his curiosity was satisfied because he never asked
to try them again. Also, as far as I know, he’s never
let on to anyone else.
I checked in
with mum and she was still on the phone although
indicated by mime she’d be OK if I went out. Pete now
lived at home with his mum (dad long gone) and a new
baby sister, thanks to his mother’s boyfriend Sam.
Although there’s talk of marriage no date has yet been
set and Pete isn’t the biggest fan of his mum’s choice.
However, it’s not because of anything he’s said or done,
in fact he’s quite an amiable guy. I think Pete thinks
no one is good enough for his mother and after the last
disaster doesn’t want her to end up with another ‘wrong
‘un’. However, he loves his little sister and I suppose
he’ll want her to have a proper mum and dad.
Anyway, we
didn’t have anything particularly planned so we just
wandered around in the pleasant weather catching up. I
had a lot to tell him and he seemed fascinated about the
tree strike. Of course he knew about it, everyone in our
area did, but he hadn’t observed the event like I had.
Once I started on about the consequences to my
witnessing the event he wondered how I’d coped at all
with constantly wet pants. Of course I had to reveal
that I still needed more than a pair of tighty-whities
to combat the flood and showed him (privately) the
plastic pants hiding my thick personal protection.
“Hell that looks
comfy.” He said with a smile, whilst idly patting my
slightly bulky bottom.
I laughed back
in agreement. I like Pete a lot.
#
We walked up and
past the stump and said our hellos to the folk we knew.
In fact, I’m not sure whether the slight bulge under my
shorts was noticeable but didn’t see any reaction as we
passed by. I was enjoying the rub of the thick cotton as
we sauntered along and could feel the plastic of my
pants slide against the fabric of my shorts... it gave
me a little buzz.
Although he was
my best friend I didn’t mention that I was seeing a
psychiatrist or that I might need my brain tested, I
didn’t want him to think I was in some way damaged
goods.
Peter’s a good
few inches taller than me and was wearing jeans with
rips at the knee. He’s always fashionable and had, as
far as I remember, quite a following from the girls in
class. He wasn’t overly sporty except in one area,
swimming, where he was unbelievably quick. We had a
small school team that went into competitions but in
truth, we only had Pete, who usually won his heats. I
have a photograph of him and me somewhere, he’s wearing
his tiny green school Speedos, we’re fourteen and I’m
hugging him as he’d just won a final. It’s
strange that I’d never thought about it until that
moment, but I suppose he was a bit of a hero as well as
a friend.
Pete’s main
gossip was that he had got Catherine, his little sister,
to say her first word ‘Pee’, which he was convinced was
her trying to say his name. Also he was dreading having
to go off to University if he got the results expected
and leaving mum to, well, be without him for the first
time in their lives.
“You don’t have
any jobs going at your place do you?” He asked as a sort
of general enquiry, but I wasn’t sure he meant it.
“Not that I know
of in our little section but,” I looked to see if he was
serious, “I can always ask if you’d like me to.”
“I envy you...
you know... actually having a job. If I go to uni for
three years and then have to start looking... you know I
have absolutely no idea what I want to do...” He sounded
exasperated with having to think about his future.
I was slightly
taken aback by the fact he said he envied me. A shiver
of pleasure shot up my spine but decided best not to
make too much of it.
“Well perhaps
you can go into teaching babies to talk.” I humorously
volunteered.
“Well I have
learned to change a nappy so, you know where to come if
you need...” he patted my padding.
We both sort of
laughed but this was the first time he’d mentioned my
nappies as such and I began to wonder what that would be
like. Hell, the office changes me so... what would it be
like if...?
Uh-oh... how the
hell did that happen?
This was a
strange sensation because it had never happened at any
time when I’d been changed in the office by my work
mates. There was no build up, there was no warning but
there was a warm splurge in my nappy, which I hoped I
didn’t have to explain.
I quickly
rearranged my padding for more comfort. Then felt guilty
for imagining such a thing and hoped Pete hadn’t noticed
my excitement at his suggestion.
As it was he
hadn’t really wanted a job he just craved someone to
talk to about his fears so between us, we had one hell
of a ramble... both physically and verbally.
We must have
spent a good couple of hours just wandering around and
despite my recent blackout didn’t feel all that bad.
Although, I did feel my nappy getting warm as we passed
the lightning tree stump for the second time. However, I
was heading home so no need to worry.
Giggling at
their own bravery there were two little kids jumping on
and off the newly levelled remnant. I could tell they
were both thickly padded and wondered if they were also
wet like me. Surely it wasn’t just me that the tree,
even in its current state, had an effect on.
Pete had to do
something with his mother and sister that afternoon, so
arranged to see each other later in the week...
schoolwork permitting.
#
Until I got in
and chatted to mum I hadn’t realised how long it had
been since I’d had a really good long talk with anyone
other than family and work mates. In the past couple of
years, since getting a job, I think I can count the
times that I’d met up with any of my school mates on one
hand. I’m not sure if this was my doing or theirs, all I
do know is that Peter is the only one I see now.
In all our
up-dating I’d forgotten to mention seeing Trinny and her
fashion faux pas as she walked along the beach after
having sex with her boyfriend. It made me smile as I
remembered the scene and knew it would have had Pete in
stitches. However, that would have to wait because mum
came up and told me that she and Doctor Ames had been
talking and the blackout had moved things on. She was
able to organise a session at the hospital with a
neurologist for Tuesday afternoon.
Typical of mum,
she’d already called Mrs Dewhurst to clear me taking
Monday and Tuesday off. I wasn’t sure how much she told
her but wanted to keep an eye on me until the doctor had
checked everything out.
It seemed things
had moved on a pace since I’d been out and it had all
been done without any consultation with me and to be
honest, I was feeling a tad annoyed. I know, I know,
I’ve been acting like a little kid for some time now so
why would I think I should be involved now... but I was.
However, there
looked to be some sign of relief on mum’s face now she
had things underway, so I said nothing. Also, and this
is another point, I was wet and needed mum to take care
of it like she’d always done. Now wasn’t the time to
tell her I was an eighteen year old adult who should be
making his own decisions.
#
On Sunday we had
a downpour, which seemed to signal the end of summer. In
fact, the ground had got so dry there was flooding in
various towns, villages and cities right across the
country. We were fine, well, except that a local
electrical substation somehow got flooded and took the
power out for several hours. Mum, me and Jen played
board games, whilst dad grumbled that his one day off
(when he had planned to play golf) had been ruined. Jen
also beat us all at Monopoly, which I’m sure just added
to his woe.
As usual, I was
still wearing shorts around the house to conceal my
nappy but added a t-shirt and jumper as the temperature
had dropped a little. So, apart from the weather nothing
much changed.
The family had
been brought up to date about my blackout and the fact
that I was going for some tests. Mum let Jenny in on the
reasons she was so worried, my sister’s reply was “Well
I hope you never dropped me.” She was joking of course
but I saw mum stiffen a little before her own reply. “I
did but you just bounced.”
Both dad and Jen
asked if I was nervous about these tests and I said “No
not really” but the constant wet nappy meant I was but
tried to put on a brave face. The thing was, mum had
insinuated that when I was three I may well have suffer
some kind of brain trauma and that information had sent
more than a little flurry of worry down my spine and
into my bladder. Certainly, over the last few weeks,
things had happened I couldn’t explain though in general
I thought I’d managed quite well. Mum also must have
thought so because she never said anything (although
might have suspected something, only not what she was
now faced with).
The wearing of a
nappy has never been a problem, nor have plastic pants,
so that’s something I just accepted... but now? Was it
all connected? Well, now they wanted to check my brain
and I’d had a blackout so... were things getting worse?
Mum didn’t want
me to go anywhere without one of the family being around
just in case of another blackout, which was OK with me
as I had no plans. However, that meant I had more time
to myself and the internet can be a terrible thing if
you start looking up ‘symptoms’. So I went up to my
room, sat at the computer and started searching for... I
wasn’t sure what but, as I was sitting in a nice thick
nappy and clear plastic pants, I felt completely at
ease.
However, surfing
the net was a huge mistake because Sunday evening, I
read about something called Hydrocephalus, and
decided that was what I had. I have to admit that by
this time I’d scanned so much I was more than a little
confused and might have been attributing ailments and
symptoms to both opinions and medical facts, not a good
combination in my view. However, I’d taken so much
‘info’ in and not separated the various sites, by the
end I was sure that: incontinence, lack of sleep,
blackouts, memory loss, anxiety and the weather were all
down to this one thing – Hydrocephalus.
Of course I had
no idea if that was the case but it scared me so much
that I inadvertently filled my nappy without knowing I
had until I got up and felt the mess I’d made. Even the
smell only hit me once I moved and looked down at the
front of my plastic pants which looked fine, yet I could
feel the squishy mass dragging down the back. I picked
up a couple of disposables as replacements and awkwardly
made my way to the bathroom and hoped to clean myself up
before anyone else noticed.
I was quite
embarrassed.
#
As Tuesday
afternoon approached, and despite me saying to everyone
I was OK, my nether regions were almost constantly wet.
Thankfully, I’d had no further blackouts or memory
problems. I tried to hide my apprehension but something
else was telling my bladder otherwise. I arrived at the
‘Neurological Dept– Clinical observance’ and was greeted
by Doctor Ames and Doctor Sanjid Mandip, who I took to
straight away as he had a similar friendly accent as Mrs
Patel at the office. Mum had insisted on being with me
every step of the way, which was just as well because I
needed a change before we entered the pristine white
office. We did that in a handicapped toilet on the
ground floor; thankfully no one was waiting when we
exited.
Over the past
few days I’d tried to drink and eat as little as
possible but I still managed to pee with alacrity.
However, mum said it might be worse if I was dehydrated
so insisted I took regular sips of water. I felt a
little light-headed when I entered the office.
After a few
pleasantries the neurological doctor talked me through
what was going to happen and what they could discern
from these tests. The first thing was an EEG
(Electroencephalography), which he said measured neuron
activity. I pretended I knew and was fine about it all
but in truth... wanted to run a mile. My original idea
of just getting on with it disappearing leaving
me mesmerised by all the electronic equipment.
Laura Ames said
she would ask some questions like she normally did and,
with the helmet they’d placed on my head, would be able
to see how my brain reacted. I tried to think back to
episodes of House or Casualty or
Grey’s Anatomy to see if I remembered anything but
really, I just wanted to get it over with and then go
home. Suddenly, I felt slightly afraid and wanted mummy,
erm, mum but thankfully didn’t cry out for her, it was
all in my head.
Thoughts of Dr
Brown Bear from Peppa Pig entered my head (I used to
watch her with Jen when she was little) and I
immediately felt less stressed. However, I was aware of
the sensors in the helmet picking up on my brain waves
and wondered if an image of Peppa and the doctor would
appear on screen. I didn’t pursue that thought as Doctor
Laura started her questions again. She’d told me we’d be
going over some old ground but she wanted to see how my
brain reacted. I was in her hands so mum watched, whilst
Doctor Mandip monitored the, erm, monitor.
At one point
Laura asked if I used the nappy to masturbate, a
question she’d never asked before, and one that took me
by surprise. She assured me that it was a perfectly
normal enquiry and no one would think any less if I did.
I saw her watch the monitor as I thought about the
question for a few seconds. My bladder flooded my nappy
and I felt the warmth grow but wasn’t sure if it was
from the stream of pee or embarrassment.
Apparently, the
monitor peaked for a moment but I answered that it
happened occasionally but not usually. Of course I was
trying not to think of my recent encounter with Peter
but that was all I could think about. I just
hoped they couldn’t tell.
A host of other
similar sexual questions followed which I answered as
truthfully as I dare with mum looking on. She didn’t
seem perturbed by any of them and neither did the doc
who carried on regardless. I just sat there in a flooded
nappy glad that my plastic pants were keeping me from
leaking right there in hospital. I wouldn’t want them
observing that in this observance unit.
#
After about
thirty minutes she had images and a printout of my
reactions and whilst she studied that and chatted to
mum, I was escorted down the hall to the MRI unit for a
scan. I was greeted there by a couple of nurses (or
technicians) who again talked me through what was about
to happen. As I slid into the chamber Doctor Mandip
joined us and shielded himself in a little cubicle. I
was given some headphones and told that as the machine
can make people feel a bit claustrophobic there’d be
music to help me relax and an emergency button should it
all get too much for me.
They asked me to
lay as still as possible and they’d talk via the
headphones if they needed me to move or if they were
going to change any of the settings, so not to worry.
I hadn’t had
time to get a change so lay there in a saturated nappy
hoping no one would be able to tell (I wasn’t certain
exactly what an MRI could detect). Anyway, the music
started to play and it was nursery rhymes set to music.
I didn’t know if they were taking the piss or a young
kid had been in there before me but that’s what I got.
As it was, Doctor Brown Bear entered my thoughts again
and the anxiety of being in such an enclosed space left
me.
I’m not sure how
long I was in there for because I think I drifted off
for a while but eventually the machine stopped and I was
let out.
#
Back in Clinical
Observance we all met up. I could see mum and Laura had
been having a discussion whilst I was away.
They had forced smiles on their faces so whatever
had gone on must have been pretty intense. Their polite
enquiries as to how it had gone were more for show than
a need to know. I wondered what had been going on.
Meanwhile,
Doctor Mandip entered the room and had things fed
through to another screen on his desk.
He started
pointing to an image of my brain from the scan, talking
about ventro something or other here and
prefrontal do-dahs there. I had no idea what an
amygdala was (he even spelt it out but it
didn’t help) but it seemed important. So, although the
medical stuff passed me by, the upshot was... there was
a dark stain on my brain.
Brain damage
immediately shot through my damaged brain.
I was shaken but
the doctor smiled and said I shouldn’t worry (how often
had I been told that... and now... there was something
definitely I needed to worry about). Apparently, it was
an area that wasn’t reacting like normal but wasn’t a
huge problem. However, they would study all these
results together and plan a course of action if one was
needed.
‘Of course
action was needed’ my
damaged brain screamed but I just sat there numb feeling
my nappy gain even more weight.
That’s when I
must have passed out. My anxiety level had hit a peak
and I came too with the doctor and a nurse faffing over
me... unfortunately it wasn’t Doctor Brown Bear (that
would have been fun) I was sucking my thumb and the low
mewling was also coming from me sounding like a wounded
kitten. Mum looked concerned but Doctor Laura had
disappeared.
Mum spoke to the
doctor explaining this was exactly how I reacted as a
three year-old when the storm scared me. He typed stuff
into the computer and mumbled something about it
explaining...
I was still a
bit zonked out but heard him say to her that it could be
possible that whatever the injury was, certain
information just wasn’t being transmitted or received
and that possibly (and he kept stressing the
possibility) my brain had found another pathway... and
possibly (again) might be short-circuiting under
stressful conditions.......
There again, I
may have dreamt all that and in fact none of it happened
because moments later I woke up in a side room, on a
doctor’s examination table, where mum was just finishing
changing my nappy.
“Oh sweetie...
you’ve been through a lot today, let’s get you home.”
The look of concern was back but so was the love that
she always showed when changing me.
“Have they done
all they need to?” I quietly enquired.
“For the moment
love but they have to check a few more things. Having
said that, the doctor says, they have all the
information they need, they just need to pour over it to
make a final diagnosis.”
“What did Doctor
Laura say?”
“Do you need to
know right now,” she sounded a bit drained so I just
shook my head and, with a fresh thick nappy in place, we
set off home.
*
* *
Doctor Laura
Ames
Case AT -
20001
Notes and observations
•
Doctor Mandip has now checked the Neuroimaging
and compared the readings against the MRI scan. He had
my psychological report and witnessed for himself some
of the problems that Anthony presented with.
•
The scan identified some damage to the cerebral
cortex. A part of his brain has been impaired but the
EEG confirmed that the nervous system controlling
bladder functions appears to have remapped a course
which can become short-circuited at times of stress.
•
Although the damage is small the scarring has
suppressed these and possibly other, as yet unrealised,
functions though synaptic activity still clearly
registers.
•
Doctor Mendip is of the opinion that surgical
action is not needed unless the patient’s symptoms
markedly deteriorate.
•
This will be a relief to everyone.
~~~
•
Anthony has recently been under extreme stress
owing to witnessing a particularly violent thunder
storm. This reaction related back to an undiagnosed head
trauma he received when three years old during a similar
event.
•
His parents were unaware of the trauma Anthony
suffered, but it would appear that at times of high
anxiety memory of that incident becomes the main focus
and there is a return to this early juvenile state.
•
Anxiety, whether caused by weather conditions,
fear or concern over day to day occurrences have led to
a failure, in part, of the patient’s neurological
impulses. Thus impairing his ability to control certain
bodily functions, which in turn leads him to seek
security and comfort in areas he feels safe.
•
This, together with the reinforcement over many
years that the wearing of protection to control the
problem is required, has indelibly stamped this course
of action in his mind.
•
This is because, according to his mother, when
his occasional bouts of incontinence started, it became
the easiest form of security to administer. Therefore
the first and quickest line of defence, which has not
only become the norm but also the most desired.
•
Other than when he was three and his incontinence
lasted for a number of months, he usually overcomes
these bouts in a few weeks and is then back to wearing
age appropriate underwear. This time, the constant and
unexpected incontinence has increased in volume and
duration.
•
Although he works with computers, in many ways
Anthony, at eighteen years of age, still hasn’t really
grown into full adulthood. He’s a likeable young man not
known for displays of anger or temper tantrums. However,
stress leaves him open to lack of bladder control, which
may over the years have dented his self-confidence.
•
His reliance on his mother, which is a wonderful
bond, is also one that may have led to the
underdevelopment of his own abilities and the need to be
looked after. She has never withheld in this area,
always being keen to help and encourage her son... even
still being the one to change his nappies.
•
Because of how long this method of coping with
his periods of wetness has been going on, no one of the
family is surprised to see an eighteen year-old
wondering around the house wearing bulky protection. It
is simply accepted.
•
The recent ‘blackouts’ can be assigned to the
anxiety Anthony has experienced since the lightning
strike, which I have to agree with his mother, appears
to have been the main cause for his recent, more
noticeable problems. The mental impact of this event now
and in the past, cannot be understated.
•
Having spoken to his parents we have approved a
process to try and get Anthony to recognise when anxiety
arises and ways for him to calm and manage that
apprehension. We need to guide him away from his
dependence on protection and attempt to break the link
between current worries and his childhood trauma.
•
My main diagnosis is that most of the recent
‘developments’ are psychosomatic undoubted brought on by
the witnessing of the ‘close call’ lightning strike. We
will develop new coping mechanisms for him to employ.
•
Outcome will depend on how attached Anthony is to
wearing protection. At the moment he doesn’t regard the
wearing of protection at his age as any different than
wearing a pair of boxer shorts.
•
Anthony is at ease with how he looks and dresses
and seems to regard the wearing of protection as a
necessity. (If I wet I need a nappy – is how he puts it)
•
According to his mother shorts are the main item
of clothing he wears both at home and when out and
about. It’s his preference which gives him an even
younger appearance than just his lack of stature. This
is another issue we need to explore.
•
I think because of the lack of any medical or
psychological assessment over his lifetime (when I
believe his problems could have been caught earlier) a
series of sessions with an accomplished physiotherapist
will hopefully help ease Anthony forward.
•
Anthony will have a further EEG assessment in six
months’ time.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 21
I suppose the
main thing was that Doctor Ames had been proved correct
in her assumption that there was more to my situation
than just being frightened of thunder. Indeed, that
there were other underlying factors to do with both
physical and mental issues... and a new one was about to
be added... nurture.
At the hospital
I’d found the entire procedure both thrilling and scary.
I was overcome by the fact they’d discovered scarring
but relieved they didn’t have to drill into my skull to
fix it. Doctor Mandip was nice and reassuring and I
liked the way he talked me through all that they’d
uncovered. He was helpful explaining the colourful
images of how my brain worked and what part was doing
what; it gave the impression there was a kids TV show
going on in there.
However, it
seems that Doctor Ames and I would be seeing a lot of
one and other over the coming months. She and mum had a
very long talk and I think between them they’ve delved
deeply into my past and uncovered some things of which I
wasn’t necessarily aware. I could tell that the
psychiatrist had got into mum’s head as well because her
attitude around me altered.
I gathered from
little snippets of over-heard conversation she had with
dad that the psychiatrist had put mum on the spot. A
brief outline to what was said – mum was to blame for
rushing to put me in a nappy at the first sign of
incontinence and not taking me to a paediatrician or
doctor when I began to regularly wet when I got
stressed.
Putting me in a
nappy may have been a speedy way of dealing with my
anxiety-wetting but, and it was a big BUT, according to
Laura Ames, it bordered on neglect by not sorting out
the problem, merely hiding it.
I think mum
would have rounded on her if she also hadn’t thought it
was all her fault and seemed keen to do all she
could to remedy the situation.
If I’m truthful,
I’m a little worried because mum has already said that
she foresees changes.
“Wouldn’t it
be nice not to wake up wet in the morning, or worry
about having to wear a nappy all the time?”
I mean, of
course it would...
“Not being
afraid whenever a thunder storm was forecast?”
She emphasised with seriousness.
I nod in
agreement but...
Mum kept up a
litany of things that would be better, though I could
tell she was only echoing the psychiatrist’s thoughts.
What if Doctor
Laura changes my personality?
What if she
makes it so I don’t like certain people... or things?
The bottom line
is... I’m mainly worried that at the end of all this...
I won’t be me.
#
Mum started
making changes straight away. The main change was...
that from now on... she wouldn’t be supervising my
changes. I’d have to learn to do it myself. That also
meant the same at the office... no more community nappy
changes.
“Sorry Anthony
but from now on, nappies are your responsibility. So,
you’ll have to change yourself and be responsible for
washing and drying all your protection... I won’t be
buying any more supplies of disposables.”
She said all
this just a couple of mornings after my hospital visit.
It didn’t help that I was lying in a double thick soaked
nappy and was caught more than a little off-guard. I
knew mum had said there would be some adjustments but
this was a very dramatic and unexpected development.
“Oh, erm, why...
can’t you, errr, ummm...?” I sleepily tried to argue my
position.
“Doctor Ames has
told me to let you deal with your problem yourself, give
you room to understand what’s happening and to let
you... you know... sort it on your own.”
“But, I mean, I
like you, ummm.” I was speechless wondering why mum
didn’t want to help anymore and why my psychiatrist had
prescribed such a course of action.
“She thinks it
will be better for you to... well...” She didn’t carry
on with what she was going to say and it was only later
I realised she was going to say... “grow-up.”
I had to get up
to go to work but I felt a burden had been placed on my
shoulders and the motivation to go into the office, for
the first time since I got the job, wasn’t there. So,
not only did I have to sort my own nappy... the support
that had been so willingly offered by my colleagues was
also to be taken away. I’d grown to like the fuss and
attention I received from my fellow workers, it made me
feel special.
I mean, we’d
even talked about it in Doctor Ames’s office... how nice
and special it was and how wonderful because all my
colleagues had been so supportive. I hadn’t realised
just how unhelpful she’d thought my work mates had been.
I waddled to the
bathroom, the nappy hefty after my nightly flood. It
flopped heavily to the tiled floor and with a huge sigh
I turned on the shower to wake up properly. Once
finished I scurried back to my bedroom but more or less
knew mum wouldn’t be there to help. Lazily drying myself
I looked around to see what supplies remained; only a
couple of white disposables and three of the joyful
cartoon ones were left. I thought that was a shame
because I’d really gotten into wearing those in
particular.
There was still
a pile of thick fabric nappies stacked up on the dresser
and piles of plastic pants, pins, lotion and powder
available for use. Of course, it was only recently mum
had let me wear disposables, she being against the
landfill side of a used one. However, I knew I couldn’t
just put on my briefs and all would be well, so I
struggled to get myself pinned into a thick cotton
fleecy nappy and pulled up a pair of white shiny plastic
pants to hold it firmly in place.
#
The weather had
turned much cooler so shorts were out of the question
even if they did hide things better, so I sorted out a
pair of longs and got ready for the bus ride into town.
I put a couple of spares in my backpack and, because I
was running late left to catch the bus without so much
as a ‘goodbye’ to mum.
If I’m honest I
was pretty annoyed with her and Doctor Laura, things had
moved on at pace since my scan and I wasn’t quite
prepared for just how it would affect me.
However, because
I’d put my protection on myself, I’d never been more
conscious of what I was wearing. Every step seemed to
convince my brain that the thickness wasn’t a problem
because the fabric and plastic combined to make its
presence known with each little movement. It was both
stimulating and security.
There was no
question – although I’d worn protection loads and loads
of times – this was the first time I had a raging hard
on all the way to work. I had no idea why suddenly,
something I’d taken for granted, and rarely thought of
in a sexual way, was making me feel so horny. All the
way into town the phrase that then kept repeating in my
head was “Do you masturbate in your nappy?”
Well thank
you Doctor Laura because now that’s all I could
think about. It probably didn’t help that the nappy was
loose (not quite the tight way mum pins it on) so I was
being buffeted and caressed by the soft material all the
time. I felt a little giddy by the sensations the
material and the bus’s vibrations were sending to
various parts of my body.
#
Sadly, in the
office there seemed to be on a downer, a blanket of... I
don’t know what, just an impression the place had lost
some of the joy I’d taken for granted. Of course I might
have been projecting something I was feeling onto them
but the atmosphere had seemed to have dropped.
Deidre said how
sad she thought it was that they weren’t allowed to help
out any more but intimated she was happy to continue if
I wanted. However, with Mrs Dewhurst telling me first
thing that from ‘now on’ (how I was beginning to hate
those two words) I couldn’t expect anyone else to help
when I needed a change; they were all under strict
instructions from mum. Otherwise, she said quite upbeat,
nothing has changed. I wasn’t sure if she realised just
how ironic her choice of words were.
Anyway, to try
and avoid any conflict, for me or for my colleagues, I
tried my best to control any wetting. I made a point of
visiting the loo as often as I could but that had a
detrimental influence on just how effective the
tightness of my nappy was. Oddly enough, I was able to
keep my nappy relatively dry until the bus ride home,
when I felt the usual warmth. But guess what... it was
excited again so the rest of the ride wasn’t all that
bad. By the time I walked through the front door at home
I was feeling exhausted but in dire need of a change.
#
Mum was near the
front door as I came in.
“Hello love, had
a good day at work?” She smiled as if nothing had
altered.
“Different.” Was
all I could muster in reply.
“Oh, erm, well
your tea will be on the table in ten minutes.”
“I need to
change...” I shrugged and went to my room.
I saw her
hesitate as she nearly followed me up the stairs but
that natural response was broken and simply returned to
the kitchen.
I was pretty
glad really, I didn’t want her to see the sticky state
the wet nappy was in. It was my secret.
I began to
wonder why, after all this time, my thick nappy now
meant something different to me. It wasn’t like I’d
never exploded in a nappy before but now... well it
seemed that’s what it was there for. Why this had never
occurred to me before I will never know because it felt
really, really, good.
Up in my room I
shrugged off pants, folded them neatly and hung them up.
I slipped out of my shirt and jumper and was left
wearing just my soiled nappy and rather shiny plastic
pants. I wandered over to the window and looked out.
“This is where it all started” I began to tell myself.
“Weeks ago and that...”
Suddenly I saw
again that tree burst into flame and the loud crack of
thunder that rattled my brain. Except. Except. EXCEPT...
Look, I wasn’t
shaking. I hadn’t pissed myself, well not any more than
was already there. Even with the sound of thunder still
running around my head, I was thinking clearly... or was
I?
I moved from the
window and stood staring at myself in the mirror. I
peered closely into my own eyes. I guess I was trying to
see which areas of my brain were lighting up like they
had on the EEG. I gazed intently wondering if I got
close enough I’d be able to detect those flashes of
neurons going about their business... mapping and
remapping my thoughts.
I felt myself
being pulled closer into my own reflection, my nose all
but touching the glass but I detected none of those
sparks of activity behind my eyes and felt strangely let
down.
A sudden touch
on my shoulder pulled me from sinking any further into
my image.
“Anthony,
Anthony, sweetie... we’ve been waiting twenty minutes
for you... are you coming down... are you OK?”
The focus of my
deep scrutiny quickly moved and I could see mum looking
concerned over my shoulder.
“Yes, errrmmm,
OK, fine just... you know... checking...” I stammered
guiltily for being up close to the mirror like that.
“Just wondering about those new pathways the doctor was
talking about.”
This didn’t seem
a bad answer considering.
Mum just made a
sort of “OK then” noise but was still taking in
the way I looked. It was only on closer inspection I
realised I was all but naked - the thick shiny plastic
pants that still hid my mucky nappy... perhaps I should
have changed first.
“Are you
planning on wearing them all night?” She half smiled and
I was a bit confused, did she want to change me?
“No, I, umm,
just got thinking about what the doctor said about my
brain making adjustments and, well, I think it might
have just made another.”
That seemed a
better answer than admit I was trying to see the
colourful bits of my brain lighting up.
Mum rubbed my
neck and sighed. “C’mon sweetie, come and get your tea
and then we can discuss things if you want.”
I did want. I
wanted to take mum to task about her announcement of no
more nappy changes. I wanted to tell her the office
didn’t seem as friendly now. I wanted to tell her about
my most recent discovery of thinking about the lightning
tree and not panicking. Oh yes there was a lot to talk
about but in the end I reached for a pair of shorts,
pulled on a jumper and joined the family at the table.
#
As we ate our
meal, a rather delicious creamy Roquefort, mushroom and
walnut tagliatelle, nothing appeared different. Dad was
mainly silent, Jen was gossiping about school, mum was
saying that Mrs Symanski had called saying how she’d had
enough of her sister and was ready to come home. No
subtle hinting as far as she was concerned... she
expected mum to go and collect her.
“So,” she smiled
at us all around the table, “anyone fancy a trip to the
coast this weekend?”
“I think you
already know the answer to that.” Dad gruffly responded.
“No chance,” was
Jen’s equally dismissive answer.
“Well sweetie,”
mum looked in my direction, “looks like it’s me and you
again?” She raised her eyebrows as if it was both a
question and something taken as read. “I’m sure she’d be
hurt if she didn’t have her favourite neighbour
there...”
“Mum, do I have
to?” I asked rather more sullenly than intended.
She looked a bit
sad.
“I thought you
liked our trip to the seaside.”
I had. I’d
absolutely loved it but things had changed. As of
this morning mum, you changed things and, and, and...
I wanted to scream but of course I stayed mute.
“C’mon sweetie,
keep your old mum company. It can be a long drive and I
like to...”
She could see
the grimace on my face and her encouraging smile faded.
“Oh OK, if you
don’t want to come I can’t make you but we could go on
Saturday, stay at the hotel and pick her up Sunday
afternoon...”
I loaded my fork
and carried on eating without replying further.
#
Mum does make
lovely meals and despite the mood I was in felt pretty
shitty at being in that mood and not telling her how
much I enjoyed the pasta. The thing was, sitting in my
used nappy was getting uncomfortable and the slight
wriggling around was making a noisy crinkle... more so
than usual. My head was full of arguments but didn’t
want to say anything in case I said something I’d regret
later. I’m not one for confrontation or arguments
normally but my head was buzzing.
It all just felt
strange and un-necessary.
Mum and Jen
cleared away the empty plates, dad retired to the living
room and I thought it about time to... oh... yes it was
time because I was experiencing another warm flush and I
wasn’t sure just how much more the nappy could absorb.
Back in my room
I desperately wanted to change into the Dino disposable
but, as I only had three left, decided to keep them for
special occasions... if there were to be any. I grabbed
one of the super-thick fabric nappies off the dresser, a
pair of thick rubber pants, four pins and headed for the
bathroom.
I shucked off my
shorts, wriggled down the plastic pants and the entire
soaked nappy drooped between my thighs. It was heavy so
just let it fall to the floor with a sodden squelch. I
looked in the laundry bin and saw I had a couple of
other items in there to wash so I knew that was my next
job (oh, and rinse through the several pairs of vinyl
pants that also needed attention) only after I’d cleaned
up and fastened myself into a fresh nappy.
As I’d done it
once I was sure I could make it tighter than the
morning’s attempt but the thicker rubber pants were
going to be my insurance to hold everything in place for
the night. I put on a large baggy t-shirt that just
about covered my bulky bottom and sauntered downstairs
to the machine. It surprised me to think that this was
something I’d never even thought about doing previously.
There was a
pre-soak setting and then it would automatically run a
wash and spin cycle. I set it to do all that so by the
morning, if the weather was fine, I could hang
everything out on the line before I went off to work. I
was pretty pleased with my pre-planning and was
returning back up to my room when Jen asked for some
help with her homework. She rarely did this so I knew it
must have been important and, as I was only going to
read in bed, went into her room where I spent a good
couple of hours.
Of course being
used to the sight she never mentioned my rubber pants
but I was pleased that I felt so secure behind them. It
was nice to be completely at ease with my sister and I
felt good that I was able to help her. Later mum and dad
came in to kiss us ‘goodnight’ and told us not to work
too late but as we worked through the problems our
conversation eventually turned personal.
I was sitting on
her bed dressed in a nappy and rubber pants, whilst she,
even in her pyjamas, looked like she’d just stepped off
a catwalk. She asked me more about the tests I’d had at
the hospital. What I thought about it all and did I
blame mum? I said I wanted to blame her but it’s
difficult to blame someone who just didn’t know
something might have happened when there was no obvious
sign.
She pointed to
the large white bulge between my legs. “And does that
ever worry you?”
I shrugged my
shoulders but I noticed her emphasis on the word ‘ever’.
“It’s never
bothered me because I know I wear it for a reason. I
think I would hate it more if I was piss... peeing...
all over the place.” She was far more sophisticated than
me and yet here I was, trying to protect my fourteen
year-old sister from such a swear word as ‘piss’. I must
have appeared ridiculous.
She looked and
raised her eyebrows much the same way mum did when I’d
acted a bit stupid.
“What I mean
is,” she started on me again, “here you are, eighteen,
and still wearing a nappy. I mean, I don’t think there
is anyone else I know who wouldn’t think that strange or
at least be resentful about it.”
She waited for
an answer but I wasn’t sure I could give her the one I
thought she wanted.
“As long as I’ve
known you,” she carried on, “at some point for one
reason or another you have been returned to nappies and
I’ve never heard one word of complaint... or... seen an
ounce of regret.”
There was no
demand for answers in her voice, she was simply stating
what she saw as facts and I couldn’t refute her on any
of it.
“Ermpphhh?” was
my initial response. What I should have said was that I
didn’t mind wearing a nappy because it gave, and
continues to give, comfort and security.
I ran my hand
over its slippery surface as if to confirm what I was
thinking... it did.
The conversation
then went to the fact that now I knew why I wet... what
was I going to do about it?
That was more
difficult because I wasn’t sure. For some reason I
simply thought that between them, mum and Doctor Ames
would have come to some conclusion and that would be it.
She wondered
what I thought of having to see a psychiatrist who had
suspected something was wrong so quickly.
This was not the
girl I’d watched Peppa Pig with... she was so much more
adult than me.
As we talked I
was surprised how much our chat was putting things into
perspective and, although I may have aided Jen with her
maths, she’d more than repaid the favour. Her
observation, and criticisms, were not meant to hurt but
certainly made me think. I returned to my own room, it
was past eleven by then, so slipped under the covers
with a different awareness of myself.
#
The power
chords and screaming guitar had brought the song to an
end. The huge arena had burst into wild applause and I
was taking a bow. Dressed like I’d just been on an
expedition through a desert (or I could have been a
scout), the audience loving every movement, swish and
wink as I barrelled into the next song... these were my
adoring fans.
On lead
guitar was Pete, looking exactly like he had the last I
saw him and the rest of the band made up of school mates
and musicians I’d seen on TV, we rocked the stadium as
we ploughed into another of our rock classics.
Slowly the
scene dissolved and the screaming fans became a line of
dolls, stuffed animals and my old action figures. The
stadium had shrunk to a large playpen where both Pete
and I were frolicking. Now we were just a couple of
nappy-clad babies giggling and crawling around, hugging
toys and building bricks; he with a bulbous nappy
restricting much movement, which was covered in shiny
plastic nursery print pants and me in an even thicker
nappy and large white rubber pants that glowed in the
lights.
We had a toy
screen in the playpen that was flashing 2.13 at us but
we were just happy to push a ball between each other’s
outstretched legs. The scene pulled back further and we
were reduced to colourful childish cartoon characters,
who mum, dad and Jen were watching on TV.
“Oh, Ant
would love this show.” Jen said as she watched the two
of us giggling like pixies whilst we entertained
ourselves.
That’s when I
woke up. My clock clearly telling me the time - 2.13 -
in bold blue and I could feel that I was in the process
of wetting the thick padding between my legs. Although
the dream was clear I just couldn’t be bothered and let
my rubber pants take on the responsibility of keeping
the bed dry. I rolled over and fell back to sleep.
#
When mum came in
to wake me up for work at 7.30 I could feel the thick
padding had been needed but the main thing going around
my head was just how well I remembered the dream. This
was unusual but it seemed so important, I thought it
must have meaning though the reason completely escaped
me.
My sister had
asked a very important question “What was I going to do
about it?” and that was also resonating around my head.
As I fondled my swollen nappy I wondered if the dream
had been influenced by that question. Were the two
things connected?
I have to tell
you here that my thinking was not forensic. It was all
over the place and fluttered like a butterfly on a warm
summer’s day from one blossom to the next. There was a
blame game but how could I play that when I might have
been as culpable as anyone else?
Up until Doctor
Laura neither I, or anyone else in the family, had ever
asked ourselves any of these questions, we’d simply got
on with what we thought needed to be done with everyone
accepting their part of keeping to the status quo... but
now.
I waddled to the
bathroom and all the way through the shower and clean up
I could think of nothing else. That was until mum
knocked on the bathroom door and told me that the
laundry had finished. It was getting late and I didn’t
want to miss my bus so cut short my thoughtful
meanderings and concentrated on what needed to be done.
There on the
floor was still my sodden nappy, which in other
circumstances mum would have removed. Now that was my
job. As I picked up the sopping material and shoved it
in the bin, another fact dawned on me - I was forever
going to be in a circle of washing and drying nappies
unless I could shrug off whatever it was that kept my
bladder from permanently leaking.
Back in my
bedroom I wondered if I should give my briefs a try but
quickly decided that I wasn’t confident enough yet to go
a day without some fortification. I grabbed a
surprisingly soft nappy from the pile and went through
the folding procedure that mum had done so many times.
Although it still didn’t quite feel the same as when she
did it, I had to go with what I’d done and knew that the
tight plastic pants would hold it in place. Actually, I
settled on thicker rubber ones to do that job and
tottered downstairs to see breakfast set out and mum
sitting drinking coffee.
“I’ve pegged out
your nappies sweetie because there’s a nice breeze this
morning but it might rain this afternoon. Don’t worry,
I’ll be here to see to them... have you rinsed through
the vinyl pants?”
“Thanks and yes,
they’re hanging up in the bathroom.”
“Oh, well I’ll
get them and peg them out as well... might as well let
the sun do its job whilst we can.”
“I’ll go and get
them.”
“Have your
breakfast first love or you’ll be late for the bus.”
It’s amazing how
quickly little bits of life creep in when you’re trying
to solve the big picture. I instantly forgot the
questions and dream and wondered if I had time to eat
breakfast, pack my bag, retrieve the plastic pants and
get to the bus in the next few minutes. Mum made it easy
for me... despite nappies being my responsibility, she
said she’d sort all that out... much to my relief.
#
I had another
couple of days with only slightly wet nappies but I
can’t say the same for the nights when I woke up
absolutely soaked. My next appointment with Doctor Ames
was fast approaching and other than mum (or anyone in
the office) no longer changing me nothing much had
changed. For some reason, after all the tests and
evaluations, I thought she’d expect a complete
turnaround in my wetting routine.
Six o’clock
Friday and back in her office where she was all smiles
and friendly welcomes but I’d become conflicted; I
wasn’t sure whether I could or should trust her any
more. I was worried that she was going to change me and
despite my commitment to resolving my problem, I wasn’t
sure if that’s what I really wanted.
“Hello Anthony,
nice to see you again, take a seat.”
As last time I’d
arrived straight from work so had a thick nappy (dry
thanks to a late change in the toilets before I left)
and the rubber pants I put my faith in to hold my feeble
attempts in making the padding secure. I was getting
better but I still didn’t trust myself to do the task
correctly.
I was a bit more
reserved and surveyed the office before I sat down. It
was like I was checking for... what... I have no idea. I
was just being cautious... then of course I rustled as I
took a seat.
In many ways it
was a silly stance to adopt because she now knew more
about me than before, so if I clammed up, she would know
I was doing just that. However, mum withdrawing her
nappy changing had made me think badly of the doctor...
it was like mum was withdrawing her love and I’d had
that unconditionally all my life.
“So, how’s the
nappy situation coming along?”
No messing with
Doctor Laura Ames, straight in with the questions.
“Still peeing a
lot at night but not so much in the day.”
I thought I’d be
as direct as her but she didn’t react to my answer other
than waiting for me to elaborate. We waited for a minute
or so before the silence got too much and I had to
explain myself.
#
I’m not sure if
she said it at all but “And how does that make you
feel?” seemed to be carried in each reply to my
reply.
I eventually got
around to saying that I hated the loss of mum’s love...
and there it was, crying about a love I perceived I had
lost when really I hadn’t. My emotions were all wrapped
up in my relationship with mum and I felt that the
psychiatrist had spoiled it.
I was upset, I’d
had enough and wanted to go home but the child in me
said I couldn’t just get up and walk away without being
told I could. This was stupid, I’m eighteen, a fact I
kept hammering home to her but she just wrote something
down or sat back and let me carry on.
The stress
levels in my head were rising and I could feel my nappy
was about to take the brunt of that worry.
I was just about
to explode when she said in a firm and controlling
voice: “STOP.”
I felt my
bladder slam shut as I looked across and she was leaning
forward with a steely expression on her face.
“You can make it
all stop if you want to. You can do whatever you want,
you are in control.”
I gazed at her
wondering what she was on about.
“You’ve let
things happen because it’s easier than confronting
them...”
“But I don’t
like confrontation... I... I...” It was that small
childish voice I’d heard so often.
“You don’t like
confrontation because it’s easier not to have to do so.”
“No, no, I get
stressed if...”
“Yes, yes, you
pee your pants... I know... but that’s your decision.”
“What, I don’t,
umm, ermmm, I don’t pee my pants on purpose.” I whined.
I almost got up
to leave. Oh god this was getting worse and I couldn’t
escape. This three year-old, no, eighteen year-old,
couldn’t escape from my tormentor because I hadn’t been
given permission.
“If you leave
now it will just prove my point... you are in control.
You decide your actions.”
I wavered in the
chair but felt the bulky padding almost dragging me back
down.
The tears were
rolling down my face as I tried again to get up but I
was afraid. I wanted mummy and I wanted to be away from
all this, this stress... but my nappy remained dry.
She sat watching
for a few moments as I tried to compose myself. I
reached into my pocket and pulled out a hanky to wipe
away the tears but they kept coming. She reached forward
and held my hand. It was what I needed, some comfort,
someone to say it was all OK, an authority figure who
would help get me through this... mummy.
I felt my nappy
warming up... the flood had started.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 22
I woke up as
usual Saturday morning to a well soaked nappy. It would
be the third change I’d had since I got home Friday
night and despite Doctor Laura saying I had control -
this just proved I hadn’t.
Last night when
I got in I was feeling pretty raw. The psychiatric
session had me confused because it had been quite
emotional. However, I was having a hard job piecing
together the exact events for it to make sense. I know I
cried a lot and I know I drenched my nappy (thank
heavens I hadn’t decided to wear briefs) but something
else had happened during that meeting which I was unsure
about. Did I cry out for my mummy?
Or worse, did I
call Doctor Ames mummy?
After the
session it took a few minutes to compose myself enough
to catch the bus home. I didn’t change in her office but
I wasn’t sure if she knew I’d wet or not. Anyway, the
offer to change didn’t come up and had it, I think I
would have said I was OK until I got home, which is what
I did.
On the journey I
kept thinking something happened, something happened
but just couldn’t focus on what. Anyway, when I got
in I went straight to my room, removed all my clothes
and checked the sodden material between my legs. I knew
it was bad and on a cursory inspection I could see that
I’d had a very slight but embarrassing accident in the
rear. Thankfully, it hadn’t been as explosive as others
I’d had recently but still saw it as a warning.
I rushed to the
loo, took a shower and pre-rinsed the messed in material
like mum did. As I walked back to the room wrapped in a
towel I just hoped this wasn’t a sign that things had
suddenly deteriorated. I think I was feeling quite down
at that moment and didn’t really know what to do.
My mind was full
of something, unfortunately I couldn’t quite put
my finger on what and that was bugging me.
Distractedly I
entered my room and mum was waiting for me looking
concerned.
“Are you alright
sweetheart?”
I simply
shrugged and dried myself a bit more, although in truth
I was so pleased to see her.
“Things not gone
too well this time?” She obviously knew from my
demeanour something was up.
I shrugged again
but noticed mum had laid out a fresh nappy like she used
to.
“Look, I can
tell you’re upset about... something (how did she
know it was something?) and I don’t like seeing
you like this so... let’s get you into a fresh one of
these,” she said patting the soft fabric, “and then we
can talk about it.”
I should have
known mum would come through for me. Her understanding
my confusion had made what had gone on
over the last few days not count... my stress level
immediately dropped to zero.
She pulled the
towel away and told me to lie out.
“Oh sweetie,”
she said taking a close look at my genital area, “you’re
going to have to take more care... it looks like the
start of a rash... this area is looking a bit
sensitive.”
Mum cared and I
couldn’t have been happier as she slavered on tons of
cream and bathed me in a flurry of baby powder. The
nappy was soft and thick and contained a booster pad but
I was so grateful to feel the welcoming embrace of
fabric and her loving touch, I happily put up with the
bulk. Next came the purple plastic pants, which expanded
to engulf the entire thing. Once she’d finished I sat
and hugged her in complete gratitude.
“Sorry mum, I’ve
really missed that... I know you’re trying to wean me
off... but, you know, it’s...”
“I know love and
I miss it too but...” and we both hugged each other
again.
#
I didn’t really
want to talk I was just happy to be in mum’s
affectionate embrace; a nappy and a hug from mum what
more could I want?
“Look, I’m going
to pick up Mrs Symanski tomorrow, why don’t you come
with me and we can talk on the journey... besides...
I’ll need some moral support for the trip back.”
We giggled
because we both knew just how trying that was going to
be.
Even though I
didn’t want to talk right then and there, I did think
that perhaps between us we could sort some of the new
questions and problems that filled my head.
I agreed to go
with her and then we went downstairs to grab a bite to
eat and watch some TV. For once dad wasn’t surrounded
with papers but reading a golfing magazine, which gave a
reasonable idea what he was going to be doing when
we drove to the coast. Jenny was staying over at a
friend’s house, so we watched some detective drama mum
had got in to.
By ten I was
almost falling asleep. In fact, I must have dozed for a
few minutes because when I woke up realised I was soaked
again. This time I didn’t mention it to mum because I
wasn’t sure how dad would take it. So far, he hadn’t
commented much on the results of my examination other
than to express his sorrow that he and mum hadn’t picked
up on it earlier. As always, he was supportive but I’m
not sure how much mum had told him so didn’t go into any
detail. Anyway, mum said we’d be setting off to the
coast around ten but she’d get me up in time to have a
nice big breakfast before we went.
#
Back in my room
and I peeled myself out of the very wet padding, cleaned
myself up but picked up one of the thicker,
double-gusset fabric nappies and fitted that as best I
could. Mentally I wasn’t in the best place to be taking
any chances.
The laundry bin
was quickly filling up so knew I had another job to do
in the morning. There was a pair of thick clear plastic
pants, which mum must have missed and had slipped behind
the radiator. I used them to keep the reassuring fleecy
fabric in place.
I was whacked
but kept running my hand over the bulbous slippery
surface thinking of how enjoyable the sensation was. My
thoughts turned to when mum changed me and how, even in
such a short space of time, I’d had missed that
connection.
That was it...
mum and me and my nappies... I drifted off thinking of
this holy trinity.
#
I woke up before
mum came in and could feel the full saturated material.
I listened and there didn’t seem to be any movement in
the bathroom yet so got up and waddled there to relieve
myself of the saggy cargo and have a damn good clean out
before the rest of the house stirred.
Once all that
was done I headed back to my room and turned on my
computer and checked what the weather would be like here
and by the coast for the rest of the day. We were in
luck, providing everyone else didn’t decide they’d like
a day at the seaside, we had picked a nice day for the
retrieval of Mrs Symanski.
We weren’t
planning on staying over this time, just a quick
pick-up and return so decided I could wear one of my
cartoon disposables and a pair of clear plastic pants
under green hiking shorts. Once the disposable was in
place I looked in the mirror and smiled, yeah I looked
like a little kid but I loved the feel of the thick
plastic coating and soft but very absorbent stuffing, I
was content.
I gathered up
all my used nappies from the laundry bin and took them
downstairs and set the washing going and then, on
impulse, decided I’d make breakfast for us all. I looked
at the clock and it was coming up to 8am and knew dad
would want an early start for his game of golf. In fact,
I could hear him in the bathroom so got the bacon,
sausage, egg and beans ready. I fancied the idea of
being in some kind of control... for once.
As I bent,
lifted, moved around the kitchen, my nice (childish)
disposable was caressing my bum and bits. I don’t think
I’ve ever felt so aroused whilst making any meal, so
this was a first. Mum wandered down in her dressing gown
surprised to see me dressed and ready for our journey
and well underway with breakfast. She offered to help
but I poured an orange juice and indicated she should
just sit down.
“I’ll do
this.... you just relax and then, you can get ready
after you’ve eaten.”
She rested her
hands on my shoulders and thanked me for being so
considerate and then patted my bum. I knew she was
checking but I was OK with that and just gratified she
let me carry on.
Dad arrived
looking just like you’d expect, I have no idea why the
clothing for such a sport is so weird and colourful,
he’d never wear such a combination anywhere else... mind
you I was in no position to bring up any clash of
colour. The crispy bacon and scrambled egg were ready at
the same time so as dad sat down, I was able to serve
what for me, is always the best meal. I just love my big
breakfasts.
#
Dad was off with
a thanks, a kiss on the top of my head, a pat on my
padding and the advice not to forget earphones to block
out Mrs Symanski. Mum cheerfully admonished him for
being disrespectful about our neighbour but he just
shrugged and said “You’ve been warned”. Of course, I
knew exactly what to expect. However, this journey was
in support of mum rather than a trip to the seaside for
our own benefit.
Just before 10am
we were ready. Mum wore jeans and a colourful top I was
in green shorts and a pale green and white striped
jumper. I thought we both looked younger than we were...
it seemed a weight had been lifted from mum as well as
me.
For the first
few miles we’d discussed the directions and where we
hoped we’d miss any traffic build-ups. Thankfully,
although the roads were busy it all appeared to be
flowing well.
“OK, who’s going
to start?” Mum asked the question.
There was a lull
in conversation and that’s when she asked the question.
“I’ll start.”
She said.
I looked
nervously over to her but mercifully my nappy remained
dry.
“Did you know,”
she queried in a voice that was filled with tease and
humour... and about to reveal something I didn’t know,
“when you were a bit younger, and we occasionally put
you back into nappies, it was Mrs Symanski who supported
such action?”
I looked at her
in astonishment. “What do you mean... supported such
action?”
“Well, you were
about six and suddenly started wetting the bed again but
we didn’t know why. Both you father and I worried that
putting you back in nappies, although would solve the
problem, we worried you might get upset... you being six
and all.”
“But I thought,
ermm...” Mum interrupted my train of thought.
“Well, I was
chatting to Mrs Symanski one day and the topic came
up... as it does.” She smiled trying excuse herself for
spilling a family secret.
“She was so
positive.”
I already knew
the old lady, and I’m sure other people in the
neighbourhood also knew, but I hadn’t expected her to be
the one to support my need for protection.
She said that no
matter at what age, if a boy needs a ‘pieluszka’, Polish
for nappy, he should wear one... it’s a sensible
precaution to take.
I looked at mum
even more astonished, Mrs Symanski said that... our Mrs
Symanski... the grumpy old lady from...?
“Yes, that Mrs
Symanski.” It was as if mum was reading my mind.
“Why?”
“No idea but she
offered loads of advice. You might not remember but she
was a godsend and very helpful... brought round useful
bits and bats... even babysat occasionally... and adored
you.”
I shivered in my
seat trying to take it all in. I just couldn’t associate
the two things Mrs Symanski and my nappies.
I mean, on the
last trip hadn’t she gone off on one after I peed my
pants. Actually, when I thought about it she
hadn’t... it was me who was embarrassed... she simply
said not to worry as it could happen to anyone.
#
We drove on in
silence for a little while then mum got back to the
subject she really wanted to talk about.
“You looked
really sad last night when you got in and suspect the
session hadn’t gone as you hoped.”
As usual she was
right on the button.
I sighed.
“Yer... I cried a bit... well... I cried a lot
actually.”
“Why, what
happened?” Her curiosity had been pricked.
It was difficult
to explain, I hadn’t quite got it organised in my head
except for the fact that I was getting anxious and
suddenly she’d shouted at me.
“She shouted at
you?” mum asked incredulously. “That doesn’t seem
right.”
“Well, perhaps
not shouted but commanded me to STOP.” And I slammed the
palms of my hand down onto bare legs just above my knees
to emphasise the point. (A stupid thing to do because
it hurt but I didn’t want to change the subject so had
to put up with stinging legs)
“Why did she do
that?”
“Well she’d
asked me so many questions I was beginning to get quite
anxious – telling me I was in control; that I chose to
wet. I, I, I could feel my bladder about to give way...
and she shouted STOP.”
“Stop what?”
“I wasn’t sure
but whatever was about to fill my nappy decided against
it and my bladder tightened up.”
“Good heavens...
what a thing...”
“Not only
that... I felt scared and wanted to leave.”
“Did she try and
stop you?”
I shrugged “No I
didn’t feel I could.”
“Were you
hypnotised or something?” She asked hesitantly.
“No, well I
don’t think so but I felt I couldn’t leave without
permission and... she hadn’t said I could.”
“Oh dear, that
all sounds very dramatic.”
“Yes, I suppose
it was and I burst into tears.” Mum just looked and
nodded as I thought about that scene. I felt stupid and
ashamed of my actions and wondered what mum made of such
a display.
“What did Doctor
Ames do?”
“She held my
hand.” I shrugged again because I really was having
trouble putting these events in some semblance of order
that made sense to me. “Just like you would” I mumbled.
“What happened
then?”
“I filled my
nappy.”
#
At this
admission I got a bit embarrassed. I know, stupid. I’ve
been wetting myself over many years and in various
circumstances, yet can’t remember the last time I felt
this self-conscious over a soaked nappy.
We drove on in
silence; I think mum knew I needed time to compose
myself.
We turned off
the main road and started down through the little
villages, which led to where our passenger lived,
including the one where I’d been changed on our last
visit.
As we passed the
car park where the deed had been executed mum cheekily
asked if I needed the use of its facilities. I could see
she was kidding and it did help me get back to feeling
less awkward.
Now the veil I’d
drawn had been lifted mum proffered an idea.
“Why do you
think she shouted at you to STOP?” She actually raised
her voice exactly like the psychiatrist had done.
“Erm, errr, I
don’t know but it was a shock.”
“I wonder if
that was the idea.” She deliberated. “I mean, she must
have done it for a reason and, as she’d said you were in
control, perhaps it was her way of showing you just
that?”
“But I wasn’t...
I’ve never been...”
“Didn’t you say
you were at a high anxiety level and felt you were about
to burst into your padding?”
“Yes, but I
didn’t.”
“Exactly,” she
said with some air of satisfaction.
“Exactly what?”
I looked even more confused.
“You DIDN’T
wet.”
“No, I was too
shocked.”
“Precisely,
don’t you see what see did?” Mum’s face was lit up like
she’d just solved the riddle of the Sphinx.
I still had no
idea but mum was very mobile in her seat excited that
she might be on to something... the very something
that eluded me.
#
“OK, are you
going to tell me what’s made you so animated?” We were
approaching the last bit of the journey that led to Mrs
Symanski’s sister’s cottage.
“I think she was
distracting you.”
“Why would she
do that?”
“Well, think
about it. She wanted to see if you were in
control so she gave you another stimulus just as you
were about to pee your pants right?”
“Right.”
“But you didn’t
pee your pants did you? Instead, you were distracted by
something else so perhaps that might be a solution, or
at least a chance of a solution, to your wetting.”
I was left
wondering if mum had gone do-lally though she was sure
she was on to something. Meanwhile, I tried to get to
grips with what she’d just announced... I wasn’t having
much luck.
“Maybe,” she
announced as we neared the cottage, “as Doctor Mandip
said, your brain has made new pathways and connections
since the accident and the lightning strike just
exacerbated those links ... or maybe forced new ones on
you.” She nodded hoping I was taking in her logic. “And
maybe, what needs to happen is a different stimulus
coming in as you are about to wet to challenge that
pathway... mmm?”
She looked at me
to confirm she was on the right track but I wasn’t too
sure.
“I think that’s
what Laura plans to do... make new pathways... introduce
different motivations...”
#
The conversation
came to an end as we pulled up outside the cottage. It
all looked so peaceful as we left the car and tapped on
the door.
It took a couple
of moments for it to be answered and it was her sister
who greeted us.
“Come in, come
in... can I get you a drink or something to eat?”
“Thank you
Zofia, that would be nice... it’s such a hot day.”
“Lena... your
chariot has arrived.” Zofia shouted down the hall.
“She’s just finishing packing... why she brought so much
I do not know... anyway...” She guided us out to the
rear garden.
The view was
stunning you could see for miles. There was an
uninterrupted view over fields to the cliffs and beyond
to the sea.
Mum and I just
looked at each other... why would you want to leave this
place, it was beautiful.
We sat at a
table with four chairs a large green umbrella shading
the entire thing and settled to enjoy the view.
Sofia arrived
with a tray of St Clements (orange and bitter lemon), a
refreshing drink I’ve always associated with summer, but
who could deny it was appropriate for the entire scene.
“This is a
beautiful place you have here Zofia, absolutely
wonderful.” Mum enthused.
“Thank you. My
husband was brought up in this part of the country and
we bought this place from an old couple over forty years
ago. When he died the cottage was just full of him and
his memories so, despite offers, large offers from
people wanting to buy this place, I couldn’t leave.”
Just then Mrs
Symanski came out to join us.
You could tell
they were sisters because they looked and dressed almost
identical. There was a no-nonsense air about them both
although age may have taken its toll, they weren’t about
to give up any independence.
“Ah Lena, I’ve
just been saying to Mary and Anthony about the offers
I’ve had on this place.”
“Yes, two whilst
I’ve been here. Bold as brass, come up, knocked on the
door and asked if the place was for sale. Cheeky
beggers.” She sort of harrumphed. “Is there a bleeding
sign? I’d ask them and when they looked shy and
embarrassed I slammed the door in their face.”
We laughed but
the two women were sort of slightly riled up by these
occasional intrusions.
“Mind you,” Mrs
Symanski said (I can’t bring myself to call her Lena
that would seem very disrespectful) some of the offers
have been humungous and I’ve told her to sell up and
come and live with me.”
“I couldn’t live
with you you old bat... you’d drive me up the wall in
minutes.”
“That’s the type
of response you get when you’re willing throw open your
doors to the old and infirm...” Mrs Symanski’s chided
her sister.
I wasn’t sure if
this was their usual way of communication but I knew we
were in for a long discussion if mum didn’t break up
this line of chat.
As it was,
another hour later and I hinted to mum I needed to go to
the toilet but in fact, I needed a change as I’d already
unknowingly wet myself whilst listen to these two’s
lively bickering.
“Excuse me
Zofia, can Anthony use your bathroom please?” Mum gently
inserted herself into their conversation.
“Of course. Do
you need a nappy change Anthony... there’s powder in
there,” she pointed the way but I was shocked she’d
brought up the subject, “through the door and first on
the left.”
“If you need a
hand Anthony don’t be too proud to ask for help.” Mrs
Symanski added with a knowing nod.
“It’s OK ladies,
he’s learning to do it himself.” Mum intervened passing
her large shoulder bag, but it didn’t help with my
embarrassment.
“Muuuummm.”
It was that childish whine again, which I guess didn’t
help with the old ladies opinion of me.
“Good for you
Anthony,” Mrs Symanski added, “you shouldn’t be
embarrassed around us. If a boy needs a nappy he should
wear one and not have to worry about it.”
I could hear
that conversation carry on as I disappeared into the
bathroom.
#
The bathroom was
spotless but smaller than I’d expected. Although tidy,
there were bottles, powders, potions, ornaments, pot
pouri, tissues and the overpowering smell of lavender.
I shrugged down
my shorts and slid out of the plastic pants before
releasing the soaked material. Although I’d got myself
well-padded I’d forgotten that I had worn my cartoon
disposable and as I rummaged around in mum’s bag there
was only a large square of white fabric and a pair of
rubber pants available.
This meant it
was going to take me a bit longer than with a disposable
and I was slightly cursing mum for not thinking ahead.
Which I realised was stupid as mum had said it was all
my responsibility now and I hadn’t brought anything.
Standing there
naked I was still rooting around in the bottom of the
bag for some pins when there was a knock on the door.
“Thank god,” I
thought, “mum’s come to help.”
“Come in,” I
whispered.
In walked Mrs
Symanski.
“I thought you
might be struggling in this small area love so I’ve come
to give you a hand.” She looked at my nakedness. “I know
your mum wants you to do it yourself but I know how
difficult that can be.” She whispered conspiratorially.
“Erm, er thanks
but I’m sure I can manage,” I stammered as I tried to
cover my privates.
“Nonsense, we
can have you ready in seconds if you just leave it to
me.”
She didn’t wait
for an answer. Simply took the pins I was holding in my
hand and slipped them between her lips. Saw the white
fleecy square of material sitting on the bath edge and
had it folded in seconds. She then asked if I’d wiped
myself clean yet.
I shook my head.
“Boys,” she
tutted and ran a face-cloth under the warm tap.
As she did that
I noticed my rather bedraggled looking cartoon
disposable lying discarded next to the sink and quickly
tried to retrieve it.
“They look fun.”
She said hardly missing a beat. “I’ll get rid of that
once we’re done.”
Although a bit
embarrassed about the childish disposable I was still a
bit stunned by the intrusion. However, I grasped that
things were now out of my control (so much for Doctor
Laura) so tried to relax and let her get on with it. To
be honest, once I got over the shock, as with mum, it
was nice to have someone else in charge.
“You’re a good
boy Anthony so just relax and I’ll have you all freshly
sorted in moments.”
I didn’t get any
opportunity to say much but wondered if she would ever
see me as more than the little lad she’d known for most
of my life. Even as she gently held my penis and gave it
a good wipe down, I just thought of myself as a little
boy who needed his nappy changed and to let the adult
get on with it.
I was cleaned,
oiled and powdered in just a couple of minutes with a
thick nappy and plastic pants in position as well.
“There,” she
said satisfied, “that should last until you get home at
least.” She left me to put on my shorts and disappeared
off to another room with my soggy disposable neatly
balled up.
When I
reappeared things had moved on a pace as mum and Zofia
were at the door and it looked like we were almost ready
to leave.
“Go and help Mrs
Symanski with her case dear.” Mum said pointing down the
hall... as she took her bag back I don’t think she was
aware that the old lady had just changed me. “It’s quite
heavy so be careful.”
I remembered the
size of her case but thankfully it was on wheels so
wasn’t going to be too difficult to manoeuvre out to the
car.
In her bedroom
Mrs Symanski was putting a few bits and pieces in her
large handbag and I took the opportunity to thank her
for what she’d just done.
“My pleasure
Anthony,” she smiled. “Don’t be in too much of a hurry
to...”
She didn’t
finish because Zofia came in and rebuked her for “wittering
and boring the boy”. She nagged her to get a
move on, whilst chiding her for keeping everyone waiting
and besides... she was desperate to have her house back
to herself.
Despite all this
they hugged and I dragged the case out to the car and
shoved it in the boot... it did seem heavier than when
she came but perhaps I’d just got weaker over all that
time.
I waited for
them to finish their farewells. Mum was already politely
waiting in the car, but this time I held the passenger
door open for Mrs Symanski. Once on board I got in the
back seat.
As I fastened
the seat belt I couldn’t help but feel well protected.
It had been OK doing the job myself but far better when
someone else took charge. This crazy, but understanding,
old Polish lady had fastened me in and I’d never felt
more secure. My head was buzzing with how considerate
she’d been and wondered, after all this time and with
her kids gone, how she’d been able to keep up her nappy
changing skill.
As we set off on
our return journey Mrs Symanski turned to mum and with a
grimace but a face that said otherwise.
“Thank God you
came... another day and I’m sure we’d have killed each
other.”
The drive home
did not go as expected. Mrs Symanski didn’t regale us
with a minute by minute account of what she’d done the
entire time she was away, instead she told us something
not even mum knew about.
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 23
To begin with
the drive was pretty uneventful, although our passenger
did dig into her bag and produce a box of orange
flavoured chocolates.
“The local
village shop may have lacked many of the basics but this
exclusive brand of Orange Crème’s I remembered
was your favourite and thought we’d enjoy them on the
journey home.” She grinned as she saw both mum’s and my
eyes brighten.
We all eagerly
took one and the woman wasn’t wrong, they were simply -
melt in the mouth perfect.
At least we
weren’t spending the entire trip talking about some
dress she’d bought or luckily, how she’d spied the
sweets in the village shop and debated whether to buy
them or not.
There was a nice
period of sucky silence as we enjoyed the chocolatey
goodies. One wasn’t going to be enough so we each had a
couple more... yes they were very moreish.
This length of
silence, although welcome, was not like Mrs Symanski at
all and after a while she suddenly announced.
“Anthony,” she
began, “Zofia and I had a really good chat about you.”
The pleasant
calm I’d retreated to whilst savouring those orange
choccies was suddenly interrupted, I don’t know if she
could hear my buttocks clenching but mum seemed
fascinated.
“Oh, why was
that?”
She knew she had
our attention. “Well, she’d noticed Anthony was wearing
a nappy... and I’m sorry to say this,” she said turning
to face me for a second, “she wondered why a boy of
twelve was still in them.”
I flushed. I
remembered that she hadn’t exactly tried to cover my
awkwardness, telling her as an introduction to a woman
I’d never met before that I’d pissed myself and had just
been changed... and she thought I wasn’t even a
teenager.... grrr. Anyway, I looked out at the passing
countryside pretending I wasn’t bothered and hoping I
wouldn’t have to hear a tirade of ‘old people’s
disapproval’.
“She wondered if
perhaps you’d had a terrible shock. So, I mentioned
about you occasionally having night time accidents when
you get a bit scared.” She paused and thought for a
moment, “She was fascinated to hear about the lightning
strike you witnessed. She wondered if that had perhaps
turned into some kind of irrational fear and wearing a
nappy had become, like, a security blanket.”
It’s amazing
that people had opinions and explanations for something
only I was experiencing. Meanwhile, mum was sort of
making agreeing mumbles and I heard the word
‘perceptive’ mentioned.
I wasn’t happy
that my need for a nappy was the topic of discussion
because I didn’t see that it was anybody else’s
business. Of course, now I was suddenly dragged back
from quite enjoying the ride to being the centre of
attention, I squirmed uneasily in the thick padding that
the woman I was hoping to silence had fitted me in. I
couldn’t have it both ways I suppose.
She went on
about how they’d sat out in the back garden and over
several cups of tea, deliberated in general how certain
things affect people in different ways. How anxiety and
shear fear play such an important part in a young
person’s development and how it was a shame I’d suffered
on and off for most of my life.
I harrumphed my
disapproval in the back seat but mum kept interjecting
her thoughts and so the conversation continued.
She did
eventually get round to saying to her sister that I was
a lovely boy - polite, well-mannered and very friendly,
which she was keen to add she couldn’t say about many
youngsters on our estate.
We’d been
driving for about thirty minutes when that little
tit-bit came about and it was just nice to hear
something I didn’t have to justify.
“... and then
she asked me if I saw Stefan in you?”
This sudden turn
in conversation took me by surprise because her youngest
son wasn’t someone she’d talked about before. In fact, I
remembered mum saying many moons ago that he was a
subject that they never discussed.
Mum was quick on
the uptake. “And do you?”
“I see what I
could have had with Stefan had I treated him like you
treat Anthony.”
There was a
catch in her voice and a slight sob as she searched in
her large handbag for a tissue.
“If only I
hadn’t been so damn stupid.”
She dabbed at
the tears.
#
Although always
nice to me I’d simply assumed she was really just a
‘stuck in her ways’ type of old lady. I’d never seen her
get emotional before and it came as a bit of a shock.
However, I saw this wasn’t a party piece or someone
looking for sympathy and I felt sorry for her. If the
seat belt hadn’t restricted my movements I’d have
probably reached over and offered a consoling hand on
her shoulder... or something.
“Are you OK?”
Yes I know it was a stupid question but it was the only
one at that moment I could come up with.
“Would you like
me to pull over?” Mum’s was a more practical suggestion.
“No love you’re
alright... it’s just me... I’m sorry.” She said trying
to hide her sorrow.
“Mum, I think
you should pull in as soon as you can... let Mrs
Symanski get some air.” Was my next attempt to come up
with something better than “Are you OK?”
A few hundred
yards later we’d driven down a minor road, which led to
a village. We parked up by a small pond surrounded by
trees but dominated by a large weeping willow. There was
next to no other traffic but the sun dappled the area in
a soft light and, although not as warm as it had been
recently, it set a relaxing scene. I undid my seat belt
and rested my hand on the old lady’s shoulder.
I could tell she
was really suffering and I didn’t know why but my
natural empathy took over.
“Take your time
but... do you want to talk about it?” Hell, I suddenly
sounded like Doctor Ames.
Meanwhile, mum
had got out and gone to the boot of the car and
retrieved a large box of tissues and a bottle of water.
If there had been one around I’m sure she would have
taken us to a pub but she was as concerned as I was that
this old lady was suddenly looking her age.
Of course she
was a bit reticent at first but mum has a way of making
it easier for people to talk. A couple of sighs, a few
understanding looks, an empathetic hug and before we
knew it... we got what had brought on her weepy state.
This tactic had worked on me hundreds of times.
“He’ll be forty
in two weeks’ time,” she shrugged and sighed, “and I’ve
not seen or heard from him since, on his sixteenth
birthday, he upped and left home.”
“Oh dear Lena,”
mum proffered the box of tissues, “what happened?”
#
Over the next
hour Lena Symanski became a different person as she wept
and told her story of how, after her husband died in an
accident at work, she fell apart. The rest of the family
also suffered but worst affected of all was her
youngest, ten year-old Stefan.
The news of Mr
Symanski’s death was devastating for everyone but it had
the effect on young Stefan who was so inconsolable he
started to wet the bed. Lena herself was finding it hard
to deal with the loss and herself spiralled out of
control. Although her eldest daughter Anna was married
and living in Poland, and her eldest son Tomaz married
and working in Australia, she was finding it difficult
keeping a roof over the rest of the family’s head.
Husband, Victor,
had been the supervisor on a building site, and the
company was trying to blame him for the accident. A
large crane came apart, plummeted to the ground, killing
the driver and four others on the ground, Victor among
them. The company had a very effective group of lawyers
that held up any compensation and dragged the
proceedings slowly through the courts.
What little
savings the Symanski’s had was swallowed up by the
mortgage, whilst Lena had taken the trauma badly,
finding solace in the bottle and too distraught to care
much about anything, or anybody else. Her grief was, as
she said, ‘unbearable’.
I wondered what
on earth had gone on between the two sisters for her to
open up the way she was. Perhaps it’s just the thought
of her son reaching forty that had set her off but in
truth I was a bit shell-shocked as the story unfolded.
Trauma affects
people in different ways and she was hit badly. So,
whilst dealing with all that, she couldn’t cope with her
son wetting the bed and took all her anger and
frustrations out on the poor lad.
Even though it
was her who insisted he wore a nappy to bed she
ridiculed a boy of his age waking up wet. Sometimes, in
the morning, because she was past caring, she’d make him
wear the soaked item to school, where he was ostracised
by his school mates. She didn’t care she thought he
deserved it, that he was doing it on purpose, and he
should stop because he was too old to wet the bed.
Shamefaced she
admitted that year after year, as his incontinence got
worse, she just continued blaming and verbally, and
sometimes physically, abused him using the most
degrading names and spanking the poor boy for making
extra laundry.
He had always
been a slight lad, not one to argue or cause trouble (I
saw why her sister had wondered if she saw me in
Stefan). A boy to be protected not attacked but still
she didn’t let up. She’d convinced herself that he was
doing it just to annoy her or as an act of attention
seeking and it was only her youngest daughter Katarina
who really acted as mum and changed, washed and consoled
the suffering Stefan.
Even in his
teens the lad was made to wear a nappy because his
wetting became a daily problem. But the constant put
downs from his mother were hurting and he needed to get
away.
Since her
husband’s death they’d lived hand to mouth but her
youngest’s bruises, both physical and mental, were
taking their toll. His mother had no sympathy and, after
six years of abuse, on his sixteenth birthday (no party
had been organised) she came home to find Katarina
saying he’d packed a bag and left.
“I wasn’t
worried.” She proclaimed in a weepy voice. “He had
nowhere to go so I expected him to return, with his tail
between his legs and begging for forgiveness.”
She let out a
roar of emotion. “Damn it, I should have been the one
asking for forgiveness.”
The emotional
barrier broke further and both mum and I hugged a sad,
lonely old woman on a bench over-looking a village pond.
The weeping
willow couldn’t have been more apt.
#
We all sat on
the bench for a while in silence.
For the first
time in ages I felt grown up. I had sympathy and
understanding of a disastrous period in Mrs Symanski
life and realised how easily it was for things to go
wrong. The spiralling out of control of the situation,
enhanced by the bitterness at losing a loved one in such
tragic circumstances, and the resulting fallout could
happen to even the most innocent, it was a lesson to
learn.
However, I
suddenly realised that I was soaked. I think I’d felt a
kinship with Stefan and his horrendous treatment had
seen me empathetically flood my nappy. I didn’t
say anything, merely sat there considering how such an
experience had eventually turned this bitter old lady
around. It was mum who put a voice to the question.
“Is that why you
were always so supportive of Anthony when you got to
know about his problem?”
“Yes, I didn’t
want any other parent making the same mistakes I made.”
She sniffed into her tissue.
That made two of
us. I was so grateful my family had not reacted in any
way like Mrs Symanski.
“Lena, you’ve
always been a good friend to me, and without your
friendly advice and encouragement... well, it certainly
made life easier in the way we were able to treat
Anthony here.” Mum was gently stroking her hand and
including me in the conversation.
Mrs Symanski
shrugged.
“I remember the
first time you came over to our house and you saw
Anthony wondering around wearing a nappy and I was
embarrassed. I thought at five years-old it might
reflect badly on us the fact that our son didn’t appear
potty-trained.”
The old lady
just nodded as if she was also just remembering.
“Do you know
what you said?” She didn’t give her chance to recollect
she just ploughed on. “If a boy needs a nappy, he needs
a nappy – it’s not the end of the world and you
shouldn’t force him to give it up if that’s not what he
needs.”
Mum was pleased
she remembered it so clearly.
“Over the years
as we got to know each other better and we had out
little chats, you became a font of information about
anxiety issues and how they effect a young mind. Until
now I never knew why you were so amazing and
understanding but I guess you’ve had a great deal of
time to reflect on what happened. Meanwhile, I took in
everything you said and I think it made life easier for
all of us.”
I was amazed
that our neighbour had such an influence on mum... and
as it turned out... the fact that because of her the
family accepted why I still wore nappies.
However, I
wasn’t that sure now why she saw Stefan in me. I mean,
he started wetting from grief and the constant
bickering, argument and blame made his condition worse.
That in no way reflected on my situation but perhaps it
could have been very negative without her input. I
should be grateful just in case.
Mum continued in
her praise of Mrs Symanski... and I’m not sure it was
only to make the old lady feel better.
“If Anthony was
anxious and began to wet the bed... your advice was a
nappy would instantly solve the problem. As he got
older, and because he never complained about wearing
one, it seemed the most effective way and became an easy
fix. Throughout that time you always said a boy
shouldn’t have to worry about a different style of
underwear...”
Mrs Symanski
interrupted. “I had a lot of time to think of my
selfishness... and stupidity once Kat got married and
left home. Much too late - I hated what I’d put the
family through, especially Stefan. I know I was grieving
but what sort of mother treats her son...” The tears
sprung into her eyes and we waited for the moment to
pass.
#
From our shocked
looks to each other I think both mum and I had been
stunned by her confession. Obviously, from the way mum
reacted, this information was all new to her and we saw
sadness and regret in our neighbour we’d never seen
before. Over twenty years without seeing or hearing if
your son is dead or alive must have been one hell of a
weight to carry. Especially when you blamed yourself for
what happened.
Then mum
realised that the information about me since Mrs
Symanski had been away had changed, and a whole lot of
other influences, elements and data had been included
into why I still wet myself.
Now wasn’t a
time to go into all that, and besides it didn’t help
that I could feel the pooling cooling and I wanted to be
in something more comfortable as soon as possible. We’d
been sitting there for an age so perhaps now was the
time to make a move to finish the journey home.
I wasn’t sure
how I could move things along so I’d be able to change
at home. I don’t think either mum or Mrs Symanski had
noticed I was wet but I was fidgeting a little
uncomfortably on the hard wooden bench.
Eventually the
situation appeared to have come to some conclusion and
home seemed the best way forward. As I got up to help
Mrs Symanski to her feet I unconsciously grabbed my
crotch to rearrange the soaked padding. The old lady
noticed.
“Erm, Mary, I
think Anthony needs a change...”
“No, no, I’m
fine.” I tried to convince mum there was no urgency but
she wasn’t going to be fooled and because there was a
more experienced voice I was reminded that it wasn’t
healthy staying in a wet nappy for too long.
My protests fell
on deaf ears and between them I was cajoled onto the
back seat and told to remove my shorts so they could
check.
“Mum, you said I
have to do this on my own.” I thought this was a good
way around any argument, even though I was dead against
having a nappy change in such an idyllic spot.
“OK love then do
it yourself. Have you brought any spares with you?”
“No, erm, but,
I...”
I knew that mum
had at least another change in her bag because I saw it
when I was changed in the bathroom but she was right, I
hadn’t thought to bring anything.
Mrs Symanski
took charge and simply told me to sit back and let the
professionals deal with it. Mum was smiling at the way
she had snapped out of her doldrums now she had a
project.
Of course mum’s
bag contained all that was needed and I was stripped,
wiped, cleaned and powdered efficiently on the back seat
of her car, which seemed to be getting a bit too
regular.
“Muuumm.”
Yes that whine again didn’t cut it as she passed Mrs
Symanski each item and watched in admiration as the old
lady completed the task. She had me nappied and pulling
up my shorts in just a couple of minutes.
“I see you
haven’t lost your flair, Lena... all very professional.”
Mum was smiling so, now I’d been attended to, we could
continue on our journey home.
I don’t think
I’d ever been changed in such a lovely spot or under
such circumstances and although I whined in protest, I
was grateful to be wearing fresh and dry padding.
This had been
one hell of a trip... and now thankfully... a much more
comfortable journey for me at least.
#
Once we’d
dropped our passenger off we found the house empty,
neither Jen nor dad having returned from their outings.
In some ways it had been quite a gruelling, if
illuminating, excursion, which was going to take time to
process. To help with that, I popped on the kettle and
made us both some tea.
As we settled
down mum began. “Well sweetheart, what did you make of
all that?”
Where to start?
Was mum referring to the old lady’s confession, her
participation in changing my nappy or her surprise
involvement in my family’s attitude to me still wearing
protection?
“Poor Stefan,”
was all I could come up with.
“Yes, yes,” mum
nodded in agreement, “that was such a revelation and
does explain a lot as to the advice she’s given over the
years.”
I looked at her
to explain.
“Well, as you
know, although your father and I have always used
nappies as the first line of defence
when your night time wettings began, we often wondered
if it wasn’t babying you too much and you’d grow up to
resent us.”
I was going to
comment but decided to wait.
“It was Lena who
advised us to not make a big thing about it, make it
normal, make it so you were always dry and comfortable
and then... let you make your own decision.” She looked
at me to see if I reacted. “A nappy isn’t for everyone
but for some it’s just what they need.”
“That’s not the
impression I get from Doctor Ames.” I gestured.
“No, no, indeed,
she and Doctor Mandip have added a different dimension
to it all but I don’t think anyone is wrong.”
She paused for a
long while and I wasn’t sure if I had anything
intelligent to add so I quietly sipped my tea.
“There’s
something about you Anthony that makes you unique.”
There it was
again something if only we knew what that
something was.
It was nice to
hear mum thought I was unique but there again, don’t all
parents think their offspring are special and unique,
isn’t that their job to feel that way?
Never mind, she
went on.
“The things you
wear, the choices you make, the love and patience you
have... the things you accept and never question...”
She looked as if
she was deliberating before saying more.
“I think we’ve
all got ideas, strategies and over the past few weeks
you’ve had to put up with quite a lot,” mum persisted,
“but I think you like the world you’ve created.”
#
# #
...to be
continued
Part 24
As I lay in
bed that night, heavily padded as usual, I couldn’t get
mum’s words out of my head. They circled and bounced
around but I couldn’t get rid no matter how much I tried
to let the sexy, silky smooth covering take my mind off
them... “You like the world you’ve
created”.
I hadn’t known
I’d created anything. I just went along with whatever
was there. I didn’t complain, I didn’t argue, I didn’t
confront... so how was I the creator of anything?
Thankfully,
about 2.13 in the morning, after nonstop tossing and
turning another thought did enter my head... Stefan and
what that poor ten year-old had endured. My opinion of
Mrs Symanski had changed as she’d told her story – I had
sympathy for her grief, but couldn’t understand how
anyone could treat a poor inconsolable boy the way she
had.
However, last
night mum had explained that shortly after he left home
the court case eventually came to an end. Her husband
was exonerated and, fearing bad press, the company
decided to pay the families a vast amount to keep them
silent, so Mrs Symanski became quite well off.
It was a shame
that all those elements came together at the same time.
In fact, within weeks of each other but of course by
then it was too late. No money problems, her dead
husband cleared of blame... those weights had been
lifted to be replaced by the guilt of knowing she’d
cruelly driven away her son.
Even though her
house was large and worth quite a sum she refused to
leave because - as the guilt-ridden woman explained as
we were sat by that village pond. “What if he returns
and there’s no one to greet him?”
Twenty odd years
she’d lived alone with just an occasional visits from
her family and taking hardly any time away, just on the
off-chance he would come home. The trip to her sister’s
had been a rare outing so, unknown to the neighbours,
that little old Polish lady living in the big house,
was hoping all this time for her son’s return and
forgiveness.
As I thought
about the bed-wetting ten year old I began to think how
dreadful losing a parent would be, and then of course I
started wondering if I lost a parent how I’d
react. So, when I did finally drop off, off course
that’s exactly what I dreamt about, losing mum and dad.
I was
searching, searching, searching but couldn’t find either
of them. In my head and heart I knew they were dead but
I had no proof. I was calling out for them but I was
younger, possibly about six or seven and I was alone,
scared and...
I woke up
whimpering, the bed clothes all awry and my nappy in a
terrible condition. Whatever I’d done in it had been
spread around as I’d tossed and turned in whatever
insanity had driven this appalling nightmare.
The blue figures
on the bedside clock said it was 3.12 so too early to
get up but I was scared of going back to sleep. I didn’t
want that dream to return.
#
Once my
heartrate slowed down and I’d assessed the amount of
damage in my padding the need to clean myself up
overtook any other thought... hopefully without
disturbing anyone else in the process. Even though it
was only a relatively short distance from my room to the
bathroom, I tiptoed nervously but could feel the heavy
mess I’d made with each furtive step.
There was a
smell but I’m trying not to dwell on that particular
essence... it was gross.
I inched down
the plastic pants trying my best not to disturb the
material in case the entire structure just gave way. I
dreaded what I’d find once I’d unpinned the fabric and
my fears were well and truly confirmed as it slopped
disgustingly onto the floor of the shower.
Everything about
the scene was disastrous and I couldn’t wait to get
under the shower and clean myself up. I was under those
warm jets for ages, using almost a bottle of shower gel
to purge myself of all that was dirty.
Eventually,
having done what I could do to remove all traces of my
stinky disaster, I returned huddled in a nice blue towel
to my room. I knew that the sound of me showering may
well have woken up the house but I didn’t expect what
happened next.
Sat on my bed,
amongst a pile of pre-folded nappies and assorted
paraphernalia, was dad.
“Sorry dad, did
I wake you?” I tried not to appear surprised.
He shook his
head. “Don’t worry son... I know you’ve been through
quite a lot recently and it’s having a detrimental
effect.”
I looked at him
as if I couldn’t believe he knew. Silly really, we’re a
close family and, as far as I knew, there were few
secrets between us.
“Your mum and I
talk,” he said by way of explanation, “and she’s talked
a lot about what you’re going through.”
Because my room
was a great deal chillier than the bathroom I hugged the
towel tightly around me as I ambled over and sat down
next to him.
“We don’t often
talk about these things but I want you to know that I do
understand what you’re going through.” He rested his
hand on my shoulder.
I found this
simple act quite reassuring.
There was a
slight pause before he continued. “It looks like you’ve
already had a problematic night...?”
I nodded; sure
he could smell what the ‘problem’ had been.
“... and I’m
sure you’re pretty whacked right now but I wanted to try
and put your mind at rest just in case it may help with
where your head is... at the moment.”
I think I
shivered because dad noticed a slight tremble.
#
“OK, first
things first... I need to get you dressed and back in
bed before you freeze to death... and then we’ll chat...
just for a while... OK?”
Dad hadn’t
changed my nappy for ages and I hadn’t expected him to
this time but he removed my towel and indicated he
wanted me to lie out.
Nervously I did
as he said so, with no qualms or over-thinking, dad just
got on with what needed to be done.
“Anthony,” he
said as he rubbed in some anti-rash cream, “you’re
eighteen, an adult, but still love your nappies.”
There was no
accusation in his voice just a sort of understanding. He
saw me squirm a little nervously and I wasn’t sure if I
should protest or agree... or not. However, he indicated
for me not to speak, just whispered a soft ‘Ssshhh’
and shook his head.
He efficiently
rubbed the cream in then showered me in powder before
gently massaging that into the area where my nappy fit.
He pulled up a
large double gusset nappy that was pre-folded and also
contained a soak pad for extra protection. He slipped
the pins into his mouth as he needed both hands to pull
the edges and corners together to make a tight fit.
“Thish takeths
me back.” He comically said through clenched teeth
before professionally pinning me in.
I smiled... I
loved my dad.
The white rubber
pants were next and once they were wriggled into place
he produced something I hadn’t worn for ages... a pair
of pyjamas. Normally it’s boxers and a t-shirt and has
been for a few years now but these were the last pair
mum bought – thick, soft, dark blue, fleecy cotton with
white stars all over them. I was surprised when dad
pulled them up that they still fit but had to agree they
felt comfy.
In fact, the
entire experience of dad looking after me had been
perfect and even more so when he indicated I should
snuggle down under the covers and he lay on top by my
side.
#
“Your mother
thinks you are a bit of a conundrum.”
“Dad, I’m sorry
if...”
He held up his
hand for me to remain quiet and listen.
“I know what
you’re going to say and there’s nothing to apologise
for. You are who you are Anthony, and though that
sometime sounds like it’s an excuse, in your case... we
don’t think so.”
I was so
desperate to speak but dad was stroking my hair making
me feel relaxed.
“You’ve always
been a gentle soul and, when you announced you were
leaving school and started looking for a job, we thought
you’d be better off going to college and... well...
experiencing that sort of life.”
He looked down
at me with a smile.
“We didn’t think
you’d manage to...”
“Cope?” I
whispered.
“Yes, I suppose
we thought you weren’t ready or tough enough to make
your way at sixteen and expected that you’d follow our
suggestion for further education... but guess what? We
were wrong.” His face showed genuine pride. “Mrs
Dewhurst has nothing but praise for you and the way you
work with the team she’s pulled together... so thank
you... for proving us wrong.”
We had a few
moments of silence but dad never stopped stroking my
hair.
“Do you like the
feel of a wet nappy?” I looked up at him and shook my
head ‘no’.
The fact is,
I’ve never liked that but I’m grateful when I have to
wear protection, it keeps it all contained. I’m relieved
not to be embarrassed by wet pants so can go about my
day to day (and night) business without the worry. I’m
also happy when the wet spell is eventually over and I
can get back into my briefs.
You’d possibly
wonder why we hadn’t had this conversation a hundred
times already but in truth, we hadn’t. Of course we chat
all the time. Dad comments on the things I do and I know
he’s proud of me... yet, this was a different, newer
intimacy.
“Dad.”
“What son.”
“I like this.” I
snuggled further under the covers and could feel the
substantial padding gripping me tightly. “I like my
family and I like me... and I think you’re right... I do
like my nappies.”
“Well son, if
that’s the main worry you’re going to give us... I think
we’d count ourselves lucky... because we love you too.”
“Do you think it
wrong...?”
“Over the past
few days we’ve found that bonk on the head when a tot
might be the key to why you wet, but we don’t know for
sure. What we do know is that anxiety causes you
problems and the solution to that problem is...”
“But the
nappies... the nappies...?” I interjected.
“Son, nappies or
no nappies... we don’t care what you wear as long as
you’re happy. As far as I can remember, they’ve never
caused you a moment’s distress, and, if I’m being
honest... I think sometimes your childlike innocence and
behaviour is a definite positive.”
I was looking up
at him in earnest thinking he surely thinks I’m nothing
but a big kid.
“Do you think
it’s all too babyish?” I wondered.
“When you need
them.... you need them... no matter what for, but, let’s
not get bogged down in all this, you wear a nappy
because you wet. When you don’t wet you wear your briefs
or whatever. The nappies are for security and, if you
like doing so, so much the better, it means you don’t
feel trapped or that you’re being punished and forced to
wear them. As I see it, that’s a good thing.”
“Thanks dad.” I
smiled and yawned somewhat relieved. “Do you think I
could get some sleep now?” I added cheekily.
“Goodnight son.”
He said with a final stroke of my hair and a gentle kiss
on my forehead.
As I slipped
into a deep sleep the last thing I could her was a
gentle hiss.
Not me on this
occasion... just dad making full use of the air
freshener.
#
It was almost
ten in the morning when I eventually woke up. Dad had
told everyone I’d had a rough night and to leave me to
sleep it off, so when I did wake up I felt quite
refreshed.
Two things I
noticed right away – my protection was dry but the
weather seemed the complete opposite of the day
before... it was throwing it down. I lay there listening
to the rain beat against the window but enjoying the
warmth and luxury of my bedding rather than being eager
to get up and change out of a soaked nappy.
Last night dad’s
words and actions had quite an effect... they soothed
both my mind and body. Even as I revelled in the comfort
and security he’d provided I thought how lucky I was to
have parents... and sister who were there for me.
After I’d yawned
and stretched and eventually got a handle on the day I
began to think what an amazing time these last few weeks
have been. I’ve laughed, I’ve cried (quite a lot
actually) and things have happened which I can’t explain
but it’s been a journey (Oh hell, sorry, that sounds
like the back story for a contestant on the X Factor)
that has made me realise quite a bit about myself.
I began to
question whether things happen for a reason or is it all
haphazard? Is everything pre-ordained or is chaos the
main director for life? I think you’ll agree these are
very grown-up thoughts and not those of a toddler but
then my mind wandered and, for no reason, I began to
think where I might have put my old teddy bear. At that
moment, and with those deep thoughts pushed to the back
of my mind I just knew I was so comfy and felt so good,
I just didn’t want to get up.
However, Sunday
morning or not, and even though I had absolutely nothing
planned, it was time to face the day. Pulling back the
covers I felt a brief chill but not like usual... I’d
forgotten just how sensible pyjamas were for keeping
legs nice and warm and thick nappy in place. Actually,
the pyjama bottoms didn’t keep stuff in place they just
made it cosy; the rubber pants did most of the work.
I slipped out of
bed and looked out the window, the rain was still
falling, a hefty breeze had blown up and there were few
people out on the streets. In the distance I could still
make out the tree stumps so stood for a moment thinking
how that damn tree had started all of this.
Actually, it
hadn’t started all this as I so incorrectly put
it... it had only been part of what had happened... a
sort of catalyst. It may well have caused a dramatic
change in the way my body reacted but by doing so it
also brought so much more to the surface as to why I
still had my old problem.
However, as I
looked out, not a tingle or spurt or anything affected
my body. I pushed my hand down the front of my
protection to confirm this new fact... yep... still dry.
I looked over at the clock and was grateful no huge
passage of time had mysteriously disappeared.
I moved over and
stood in front of the mirror to inspect myself. The
pyjamas bulged out where you’d expect but all in all I
wasn’t upset by my reflection. If I looked in any way
different I think it was because I felt carefree. I’m
not sure what changed, perhaps dad’s chat, mum’s
understanding or Mrs Symanski’s revelation, maybe it was
a combination of all those things. All I was certain of
was that something (yes that something) in the
millions of manic neurons flashing around my head had
decided that a period of calm was now on offer.
I’m very sorry
that I can’t explain something... it’s a feeling,
a shiver, a tingle, a heartbeat, a smile, I... well... I
don’t know what... but something felt different
and it was a real.
#
I wandered down
to the kitchen but the others had already eaten. They
were sat in the front room reading; Jen on her phone,
mum marking the TV guide and dad tutting at something
political in the paper. I said a cursory ‘morning’ to
them all and went to find something to eat.
Whilst I sat
there sipping a refreshingly cold orange juice, and
downing toast piled high with marmalade, I let out a
huge sigh. I felt very, very content. I mean, I knew
there were obviously many more things that needed
explaining so that would mean more sessions with Doctor
Ames. She’d have to delve deeper to see why the weather
played a part in my troubles. She now knows there’s a
physical reason for my ‘problem’ but still thinks that
most of it is psychosomatic... that means we’re not done
yet.
I absentmindedly
tapped my head as if all the secrets were safely stored
in their just waiting for release.
Maybe even
Doctor Mandip would need to check that my neural network
is operating efficiently. Can a new pathway be subverted
or diverted or even ‘perverted’? I knew there may well
be further wet mornings (and perhaps days) but also knew
I had my family... and that was important. After Mrs
Symanski’s disclosure I realised just how important
families are and how special mine is... I’m so lucky.
As I wriggled
around on my chair enjoying the last few tasty orangey
bites of toast I thought about Mrs Dewhurst and the team
and again how fortunate I was to be part of all that. In
the office I was an equal whether wearing a nappy or
not. It would seem that my being in a nappy was not the
end of my career. It might make me feel like a big kid
at times (being changed by them all) but it didn’t stop
me functioning as an adult so...?
Yes, that had
been something... except a something that
was tangible - the definite realisation that I actually
liked things as they were. It should have been obvious,
and it may well have been to others, but it had taken me
this long, combined with everything that has happened
recently, to be aware of that simple fact.
They’ve never
bothered me because (trumpet fanfare) - I like to
wear nappies.
I looked back
across into the living room where everyone was simply
getting on with their lives. I imagined that this, and
many other scenes of folk just getting on with it, would
be played out in homes all around the world. One way or
another, all we could expect was to live our lives the
best we can.
#
In future, when
I get anxious, I’m going to try and interfere with my
brain pattern with other thoughts and diversions. I’ll
give it a go at least. I’ll let Doctor Laura probe and
prod my subconscious and find anything else that’s
hidden in there. However, now we know about the bash to
the head, I think that particular line of neurons has
cultivated a playful, childish and amenable course that
I’m in no rush to give up.
I looked down at
my cosy pyjamas and noticed a large blob of marmalade
had dripped from the toast and landed on the jacket
right in the middle of one of the white stars. I scooped
it up and relished a final orangey experience and those
neurons sparked again.
This time it was
a flashback to when I was a kid and had to wear a bib
whilst I ate a freshly peeled orange mum had given me. I
saw it all vividly but wondered why this moment to
remember it. The juice dribbled everywhere but it was
obvious I’d found something I loved. Apparently, from
then on, according to mum, whenever we passed oranges
either on display in a grocer’s shop window, or in a
bowl of fruit, I’d try to reach for one.
I started
giggling to myself. What if, at the end of these last
few months of madness, weird dreams and wet nappies this
is what it came down to... a repeat of my childhood: A
contented eighteen year-old just reliving his
happy childhood but in his own special way?
Now wouldn’t
that be something?
The old problem
had never been old, it had been with me all of my life
and was with me still.
So that means,
because my head likes playing little tricks and I’m
confused at times, I actually didn’t mind this.
I stroked the
front of my soft but impressive bulge in my starry
pyjamas and smiled... I could feel it getting warm...
and I was content... and that was something too.
#
# # # # #
The End
After you've finished reading, you might want to return to the DailyDiapers Story Index